Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n believe_v faith_n revelation_n 3,045 5 9.5466 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B06703 The guide in controversies, or, A rational account of the doctrine of Roman-Catholicks concerning the ecclesiastical guide in controversies of religion reflecting on the later writings of Protestants, particularly of Archbishop Lawd and Dr. Stillingfleet on this subject. / By R.H. R. H., 1609-1678. 1667 (1667) Wing W3447A; ESTC R186847 357,072 413

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

from_o be_v in_o some_o of_o the_o forenamed_a respect_n necessary_a especial_o when_o he_o must_v do_v this_o against_o better_a judgement_n whilst_o these_o guide_n consult_v about_o any_o particular_a decree_n of_o they_o will_v never_o profess_v or_o grant_v to_o he_o to_o have_v pass_v it_o but_o as_o thought_n in_o respect_n of_o some_o time_n place_n or_o person_n christian-faith_n or_o manner_n edification_n of_o particular_n or_o government_n of_o the_o church_n necessary_a this_o concern_v the_o reasonableness_n of_o believe_v in_o all_o point_n those_z who_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o necessary_n §_o 17_o 4_o though_o these_o church-guide_n shall_v be_v grant_v not_o to_o be_v enable_v by_o the_o divine_a assistance_n so_o far_o as_o to_o distinguish_v exact_o necessary_n 4._o 4._o from_o non-necessaries_a in_o all_o point_n so_o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v redundant_fw-la in_o their_o definition_n or_o proposal_n yet_o it_o seem_v rational_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v always_o so_o far_o divine_o assist_v not_o only_o in_o their_o decision_n not_o to_o err_v in_o necessary_n but_o also_o in_o their_o judgement_n to_o discern_v and_o distinguish_v they_o from_o other_o not_o necessary_a to_o be_v so_o much_o press_v and_o in_o their_o diligence_n to_o propose_v they_o as_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o fail_v in_o the_o discern_a or_o propose_v in_o their_o creed_n catechism_n and_o other_o public_a teach_n all_o more_o absolute_a necessary_n or_o all_o point_v requisite_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v for_o all_o thing_n define_v be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v by_o all_o know_v or_o to_o all_o teach_v never_o fail_v in_o propose_v these_o i_o say_v so_o clear_o and_o entire_o to_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n even_o the_o unlearned_a as_o that_o none_o can_v be_v ignorant_a thereof_o without_o his_o neglect_n to_o hearken_v to_o such_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n which_o be_v in_o all_o time_n make_v by_o the_o church_n §_o 18_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o indeficiency_n of_o church-guide_n in_o the_o proposal_n of_o such_o necessary_n be_v because_o it_o seem_v most_o just_a and_o be_v on_o all_o side_n accord_v that_o all_o necessary_n wherein_o a_o explicit_a faith_n be_v require_v of_o all_o christian_n shall_v be_v to_o they_o by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o sufficient_o propose_v and_o then_o the_o dispute_n concern_v this_o sufficient_a proponent_n lie_v between_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n for_o what_o other_o external_a proponent_n can_v be_v devise_v of_o these_o two_o as_o to_o several_a of_o these_o point_n the_o latter_a must_v be_v it_o 1_o because_o experience_n show_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n not_o evident_a to_o all_o in_o many_o great_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o article_n yet_o be_v clear_v by_o the_o church-guide_n 59_o church-guide_n stillingf_n p._n 58_o 59_o so_o that_o though_o it_o be_v true_a which_o mr._n chillingworth_n say_v ●6_n say_v p._n 18._o 160_o ●6_n that_o he_o who_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v scripture_n believe_v all_o necessary_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o in_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o about_o point_n think_v necessary_a when_o various_o interpret_v many_o unlearned_a especial_o know_v not_o what_o to_o believe_v for_o the_o scripture-sence_n in_o such_o place_n and_o thus_o fail_v in_o the_o explicit_a belief_n *_o of_o some_o part_n of_o scrirture_n and_o so_o perhaps_o *_o of_o some_o necessary_n in_o it_o 2_o because_o before_o the_o pen_n of_o the_o new-testament-scripture_n this_o office_n of_o the_o proposal_n of_o all_o divine_a necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o people_n belong_v to_o the_o church-guide_n to_o timothy_n titus_n and_o other_o nor_o seem_v their_o authority_n by_o the_o write_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n diminish_v by_o which_o write_n also_o they_o be_v still_o more_o enable_v complete_o to_o perform_v their_o former_a duty_n 3_o because_o these_o scripture_n also_o refer_v we_o in_o controversy_n and_o in_o learn_v our_o faith_n to_o the_o direction_n of_o these_o guide_n see_v §_o 3._o 4_o because_o the_o illiterate_a within_o the_o church-catholick_n to_o who_o also_o god_n be_v not_o deficient_a in_o the_o revelation_n of_o all_o necessary_a faith_n can_v have_v this_o from_o write_n but_o must_v receive_v it_o from_o their_o guide_n and_o pastor_n as_o also_o they_o do_v in_o all_o those_o time_n before_o christ_n when_o the_o holy_a scripture_n remain_v only_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o learned_a or_o also_o before_o any_o of_o they_o be_v pen_v §_o 19_o 18._o if_o we_o ought_v to_o submit_v our_o judgement_n to_o these_o present_a guide_n in_o their_o decide_n what_o be_v necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n 8._o prop._n 8._o according_a to_o the_o five_o proposition_n precede_v 6._o precede_v see_v §._o 6._o it_o seem_v reasonable_a that_o so_o we_o ought_v also_o to_o submit_v *_o in_o their_o expound_v all_o former_a write_n concern_v the_o same_o matter_n that_o be_v pretend_v any_o way_n ambiguous_a and_o so_o can_v end_v the_o controversy_n make_v about_o their_o sense_n whether_o these_o be_v the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o father_n or_o former_a council_n of_o the_o church_n and_o also_o *_o in_o their_o declare_v which_o of_o former_a council_n be_v legal_a and_o obligatory_a so_o that_o the_o ultimate_a determination_n of_o doubt_n *_o concern_v all_o former_a determination_n and_o definition_n of_o former_a church_n in_o such_o matter_n of_o necessary_a faith_n as_o well_o as_o *_o concern_v new_a question_n when_o controversy_n be_v raise_v in_o they_o aught_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o these_o present_a judge_n and_o their_o determination_n hereupon_o so_o far_o as_o we_o can_v have_v they_o to_o be_v peaceable_o acquiesce_v in_o for_o if_o we_o ought_v to_o receive_v all_o that_o they_o deliver_v to_o we_o as_o matter_n of_o necessary_a faith_n we_o ought_v also_o and_o may_v as_o secure_o credit_v they_o when_o declare_v what_o in_o these_o necessary_n be_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o predecessor_n §_o 20_o 9_o protestant_n also_o agree_v that_o though_o these_o guide_n may_v err_v in_o some_o point_v not_o necessary_a yet_o their_o subject_n ought_v to_o yield_v their_o silence_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n to_o contradict_v they_o 9_o prop._n 9_o or_o as_o some_o more_o judicious_a protestant_n do_v yield_v yet_o further_o ought_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n also_o and_o yield_v their_o assent_n to_o they_o even_o in_o those_o definition_n wherein_o these_o guide_n be_v liable_a to_o error_n whenever_o not_o these_o guide_n do_v prove_v to_o they_o their_o conclusion_n so_o much_o be_v think_v unreasonable_o exact_v but_o when_o their_o subject_n can_v demonstrative_o prove_v the_o contrary_n in_o this_o matter_n thus_o dr._n jackson_n in_o state_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o injunction_n of_o public_a ecclesiastical_a authority_n may_v oversway_v any_o degree_n of_o our_o private_a persuasion_n concern_v the_o unlawfulness_n of_o any_o opinion_n or_o action_n 5._o action_n on_o the_o creed_n l._n 2._o §_o 1._o c._n 5._o it_o be_v most_o evident_a say_v he_o 6._o he_o ibid._n c._n 6._o from_o the_o former_a place_n allege_v ib._n allege_v eph_n 4.11_o heb._n 13.17_o luk._n 10.16_o joh._n 20.23_o ib._n concern_v the_o commission_n of_o priest_n and_o minister_n that_o the_o lawful_a pastor_n or_o spiritual_a overseer_n have_v as_o absolute_a authority_n to_o demand_v belief_n or_o obedience_n in_o christ_n as_o any_o civil_a magistrate_n have_v to_o demand_v temporal_a obedience_n in_o the_o state_n or_o prince_n name_n and_o our_o disobedience_n i._n e._n dissent_n or_o non-submission_n of_o judgme_n be_v unwarrantable_a unless_o we_o can_v true_o derive_v some_o formal_a contradiction_n or_o opposition_n between_o the_o injunction_n of_o superior_n and_o express_v law_n of_o the_o most_o high_a every_o doubt_n or_o scruple_n that_o the_o church_n edict_n be_v direct_o or_o formal_o contrary_a to_o god_n law_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o deny_v obedience_n again_o we_o may_v not_o put_v the_o superior_a to_o prove_v what_o he_o command_v but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v till_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o contrary_n if_o pastor_n be_v only_o to_o be_v obey_v when_o bring_v evidence_n out_o of_o scripture_n what_o obedience_n perform_v we_o to_o they_o more_o than_o to_o any_o other_o man_n whatsoever_o for_o whosoever_o show_v the_o express_a undoubted_a command_n of_o god_n it_o must_v be_v obey_v of_o all_o if_o we_o thus_o only_o bind_v to_o obey_v than_o i_o be_o not_o more_o bind_v to_o obey_v any_o other_o man_n than_o he_o bind_v to_o obey_v or_o believe_v i_o the_o flock_n no_o more_o bind_v to_o obey_v the_o pastor_n than_o the_o pastor_n they_o and_o so_o the_o donation_n of_o spiritual_a authority_n when_o christ_n ascend_v on_o high_a be_v a_o donation_n of_o mere_a title_n this_o he_o this_z other_o 7._o other_o
decree_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o affirm_v by_o catholic_n that_o either_o a_o non-possible_o or_o a_o non-moral_o fallible_a certainty_n of_o these_o council_n or_o of_o their_o decree_n or_o definition_n be_v necessary_a to_o all_o person_n for_o the_o attain_v a_o divine_a and_o salvifical_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n of_o which_o see_v below_o §_o 125.127_o provide_v that_o every_o one_o be_v right_o dispose_v to_o believe_v both_o concern_v council_n and_o their_o decree_n what_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v by_o their_o superior_n sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o without_o and_o before_o which_o proposal_n he_o may_v be_v not_o only_o not_o infallible_o certain_a but_o without_o peril_n to_o salvation_n ignorant_a suppose_v the_o common_a creed_n profess_a by_o he_o to_o contain_v all_o article_n that_o be_v necessary_a ratione_fw-la medii_fw-la to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v both_z what_o council_n be_v lawful_o general_n and_o what_o such_o general_a council_n have_v decree_v chap._n x._o 15._o q._n last_o catholic_n pretend_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o divine_a faith_n necessary_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v ask_v upon_o what_o ground_n a_o christian_n by_o a_o divine_a faith_n believe_v all_o those_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o be_v define_v by_o particular_a council_n where_o if_o it_o be_v say_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a the_o question_n proceed_v whence_o this_o testimony_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a unless_o it_o be_v from_o god_n word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a but_o then_o such_o writing_n for_o effect_v a_o divine_a faith_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o from_o some_o other_o divine_a revelation_n for_o a_o divine_a faith_n can_v never_o ground_v itself_o save_v on_o a_o divine_a revelation_n where_o also_o we_o can_v return_v again_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n i_o mean_v as_o this_o be_v by_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a without_o make_v a_o circle_n §_o 120._o to_o which_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o object_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o in_o itself_o infallible_a §_o 123._o 2._o that_o divine_a faith_n always_o resolve_v itself_o into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o into_o some_o one_o wherein_o it_o ultimate_o rest_v without_o a_o process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la or_o wheel_v about_o in_o a_o circile_fw-la §_o 129._o n._n 1_o §_o 132_o 143_o 144._o 3_o 4._o that_o such_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o wrought_v in_o christian_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n §_o 164._o n._n 2._o 5_o 6._o but_o attainable_a without_o any_o extrinsical_a infallible_a introductive_a or_o proponent_a neither_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o man_n for_o the_o enjoy_n a_o divine_a and_o save_a faith_n be_v first_o infallible_o certain_a that_o the_o external_a proponent_n thereof_o be_v infallible_a §_o 127._o etc._n etc._n 7._o yet_o that_o there_o be_v those_o morally-certain_a ground_n producible_a for_o this_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o no_o other_o religion_n besides_o christianity_n nor_o no_o other_o sect_n or_o seduce_v private_a spirit_n in_o christianity_n can_v pretend_v to_o §_o 135._o 8._o that_o a_o rational_a certainty_n or_o morally-infallible_a ground_n of_o a_o christian_n faith_n for_o this_o at_o least_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o whatever_o be_v contain_v therein_o infallible_a be_v affirm_v by_o all_o §_o 136._o but_o further_o that_o a_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church-guide_n in_o necessary_n as_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o by_o tradition_n apostolical_a be_v believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o which_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o clear_v to_o they_o they_o retain_v a_o firm_a faith_n of_o all_o those_o other_o point_n that_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n as_o to_o all_o man_n so_o evident_o reveal_v as_o church-infallibility_a be_v in_o many_o of_o which_o point_v those-others_a who_o believe_v only_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n be_v liable_a to_o miscarry_v §_o 140._o show_v from_o the_o precedent_n that_o no_o circle_n be_v make_v in_o the_o roman-catholic_n resolution_n either_o of_o a_o divine_a or_o acquisite_a faith_n §_o 143._o etc._n etc._n the_o conclusion_n wherein_o of_o the_o many_o advantage_n of_o promote_a their_o salvation_n lose_v by_o protestant_n in_o persist_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n and_o reject_v the_o conduct_n of_o the_o spiritual_a guide_n of_o the_o roman-catholick_n church_n in_o this_o query_n which_o follow_v concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n wherein_o several_a catholic_n do_v various_o express_v themselves_o according_a to_o their_o liberty_n of_o opinion_n unrestrained_a by_o any_o former_a church_n definition_n and_o many_o of_o the_o term_n have_v such_o a_o latitude_n of_o signification_n as_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o speak_v so_o distinct_o as_o not_o in_o something_o to_o be_v misunderstand_v i_o have_v purposely_o quote_v several_a catholic_n author_n of_o good_a note_n in_o confirmation_n of_o what_o be_v deliver_v to_o remove_v from_o you_o all_o jealousy_n that_o any_o thing_n be_v say_v here_o new_a heterodox_n or_o former_o censure_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n §_o 120_o 15_o in_o the_o last_o place_n it_o be_v further_o press_v 15._o q._n 15._o that_o a_o moral_a certainty_n or_o if_o you_o will_v a_o moral_a infallibility_n can_v it_o perhaps_o be_v show_v for_o many_o of_o those_o thing_n mention_v in_o the_o former_a question_n yet_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o afford_v a_o ground_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o catholic_n do_v require_v as_o necessary_a for_o that_o they_o say_v that_o a_o christian_a can_v with_o a_o right_n and_o a_o divine_a faith_n believe_v the_o particular_a point_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o be_v divine_o reveal_v unless_o he_o have_v a_o infallible_a or_o not_o possible_o fallible_a assurance_n thereof_o nor_o can_v he_o have_v such_o infallible_a assurance_n unless_o the_o church_n definition_n in_o her_o general_n council_n that_o deliver_v such_o doctrine_n to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n be_v so_o infallible_a nor_o can_v he_o infallible_o believe_v the_o definition_n of_o any_o council_n in_o part_n cular_a to_o be_v so_o infallible_a unless_o he_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n for_o all_o other_o inferior_a council_n catholic_n grant_v may_v err_v in_o their_o definition_n nor_o can_v he_o be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o this_o unless_o he_o be_v so_o of_o all_o those_o thing_n too_o without_o which_o catholic_n grant_v it_o be_v no_o general_n council_n and_o if_o a_o infallible_a certainty_n also_o of_o all_o these_o thing_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a shall_v be_v pretend_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n deliver_v and_o declare_v to_o posterity_n these_o council_n in_o gross_a for_o lawful_o general_n because_o this_o church-tradition_n be_v hold_v infallible_a it_o be_v ask_v again_o whence_o this_o tradition_n be_v infallible_o know_v to_o be_v so_o where_o if_o it_o be_v say_v from_o our_o lord_n promise_n to_o the_o church_n declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church-tradition_n be_v resolve_v into_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v still_o urge_v whence_o can_v any_o know_v infallible_o either_o in_o particular_a that_o those_o text_n which_o be_v urge_v to_o make_v good_a such_o a_o promise_n have_v such_o a_o sense_n as_o is-pretended_n or_o in_o general_n that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v such_o text_n be_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n and_o here_o again_o if_o we_o return_v to_o prove_v a_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o particular_a scripture_n or_o in_o general_a of_o the_o scripture_n be_v divine_a from_o the_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n then_o here_o again_o i_o must_v make_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n infallible_a and_o the_o former_a question_n return_v as_o unsatisfied_a by_o the_o former_a answer_n viz._n whence_o i_o can_v prove_v its_o testimony_n or_o tradition_n infallible_a of_o which_o infallibility_n for_o i_o here_o to_o resume_v a_o evidence_n from_o the_o scripture_n or_o from_o the_o former_a text_n will_v cast_v my_o reason_n into_o a_o vicious_a circle_n §_o 121_o but_o if_o i_o proceed_v and_o say_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v prove_v sufficient_o to_o be_v infallible_a from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n much_o dilate_v on_o by_o catholic_n writer_n as_o from_o the_o multitude_n of_o those_o who_o have_v affirm_v their_o receive_n of_o
these_o divine_a revelation_n from_o those_o who_o be_v know_v by_o miracle_n to_o be_v send_v from_o god_n the_o multitude_n of_o they_o i_o say_v together_o with_o their_o wisdom_n their_o sanctity_n their_o unanimous_a consent_n throughout_o so_o many_o age_n their_o affirm_v such_o truth_n much_o contrary_n to_o all_o their_o secular_a interest_n to_o the_o appetite_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o ambition_n of_o this_o world_n their_o deliver_v they_o both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n to_o their_o child_n and_o posterity_n to_o be_v deliver_v again_o to_o they_o as_o matter_n of_o the_o high_a moment_n and_o wherein_o it_o eternal_o concern_v they_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v as_o also_o their_o strict_a charge_n to_o deliver_v nothing_o in_o these_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o their_o child_n which_o they_o have_v not_o receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n their_o suffering_n many_o time_n cruel_a death_n for_o the_o verity_n of_o their_o testimony_n the_o miracle_n in_o several_a age_n do_v also_o by_o they_o which_o miracle_n when_o do_v for_o the_o testify_a of_o their_o faith_n such_o in_o those_o age_n as_o have_v see_v have_v have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o this_o faith_n as_o those_o who_o see_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o who_o have_v not_o see_v but_o believe_v the_o credible_a relator_n of_o they_o have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o their_o faith_n as_o those_o also_o have_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n who_o believe_v as_o doubtless_o many_o do_v not_o see_v but_o only_o hear_v of_o their_o miracle_n if_o i_o say_v i_o proceed_v th●s_n to_o prove_v the_o church-tradition_n infallible_a from_o these_o motive_n of_o credibility_n here_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v concern_v these_o motive_n whether_o they_o also_o be_v pretend_v infallible_a and_o whether_o they_o carry_v a_o certainty_n in_o they_o equal_a to_o that_o infallible_a assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n that_o be_v give_v to_o divine_a revelation_n and_o particular_o to_o this_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n which_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v more_o firm_a than_o any_o humane_a knowledge_n can_v be_v because_o it_o do_v ultimate_o rest_v upon_o divine_a authority_n and_o yet_o which_o divine_a faith_n at_o last_o to_o avoid_v a_o circle_n be_v by_o catholic_n for_o its_o certainty_n make_v to_o rest_n upon_o these_o prudential_a motive_n it_o be_v ask_v therefore_o in_o the_o last_o place_n whether_o these_o motive_n be_v pretend_v not-possibly-fallible_a or_o no._n if_o not_o how_o can_v a_o infallible_a or_o divine_a faith_n be_v ground_v on_o motive_n only_o high_o probable_a or_o only_o moral_o certain_a or_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v prove_v or_o conclusion_n be_v render_v certain_a and_o not-possibly-fallible_a to_o i_o from_o a_o possibly-fallible_a proof_n or_o medium_n since_o the_o thing_n prove_v or_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o assent_n must_v be_v more_o credible_a evident_a and_o certain_a to_o i_o than_o the_o thing_n prove_v but_o if_o these_o motive_n also_o be_v affirm_v infallible_a 1_o how_o can_v that_o be_v since_o all_o man_n however_o take_v divide_v or_o conjoin_v single_a or_o a_o multitude_n vulgar_a or_o wise_a and_o learned_a be_v possible_o liable_a both_o to_o deceive_v and_o to_o be_v deceive_v and_o 2_o thus_o at_o least_o divine_a faith_n will_v at_o last_o be_v build_v upon_o and_o resolve_v into_o not_o divine_a but_o humane_a authority_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n §_o 122_o and_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v here_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o divine_a faith_n into_o these_o prudential_a motive_n whether_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a be_v only_o as_o into_o extrinsical_a prerequisites_n or_o introductive_n to_o it_o not_o as_o into_o the_o formal_a cause_n or_o ground_n of_o it_o for_o so_o i_o ground_n always_o the_o divine_a and_o infallible_a assent_n i_o give_v to_o any_o article_n of_o my_o faith_n upon_o divine_a revelation_n and_o the_o prime_a verity_n because_o god_n who_o i_o believe_v say_v it_o can_v lie_v it_o will_v be_v ask_v still_o since_o some_o divine_a revelation_n be_v always_o the_o final_a motive_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n from_o what_o other_o divine_a revelation_n i_o do_v believe_v such_o a_o point_n to_o be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n in_o which_o proceed_v if_o it_o go_v not_o in_o infinitum_fw-la i_o must_v come_v at_o last_o to_o some_o divine_a revelation_n concern_v which_o i_o can_v produce_v no_o other_o revelation_n divine_a and_o so_o no_o ground_n at_o all_o why_o or_o from_o which_o i_o can_v believe_v it_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n to_o be_v such_o unless_o i_o will_v betake_v myself_o to_o a_o circle_n so_o for_o example_n in_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o divine_a revelation_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o again_o the_o scripture_n god_n word_n from_o divine_a revelation_n unwritten_a deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n i_o can_v produce_v no_o further_o divine_a revelation_n that_o testify_v such_o revelation_n or_o tradition_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n if_o i_o return_v not_o back_o to_o the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o return_v thither_o make_v a_o circle_n and_o the_o same_o thing_n will_v happen_v the_o other_o way_n also_o in_o prove_v scripture_n from_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o this_o apostolical_a tradition_n again_o from_o church-infallibility_a §_o 123_o to_o which_o intricate_a question_n to_o answer_v as_o distinct_o as_o i_o can_v 1_o it_o be_v agree_v by_o all_o that_o the_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v save_v must_v be_v in_o itself_o most_o true_a and_o infallible_a or_o that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o certitudo_fw-la objecti_fw-la and_o those_o be_v true_a revelation_n which_o our_o faith_n apprehend_v to_o be_v so_o 2_o agree_v also_o that_o such_o divine_a 1._o §._o 124._o n._n 1._o and_o save_a faith_n do_v always_o ground_n itself_o on_o god_n word_n or_o divine_a revelation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v believe_v and_o upon_o the_o authority_n veracity_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n reveal_v such_o thing_n and_o that_o christian_n however_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o divine_a revelation_n from_o their_o parent_n pastor_n or_o the_o church_n in_o her_o council_n yet_o resolve_v this_o divine_a faith_n no_o otherwise_o as_o to_o the_o ultimate_a ground_n and_o reason_n of_o their_o believe_v than_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v who_o receive_v these_o revevelation_n immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o god_n himself_o namely_o into_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n deliver_v such_o particular_a article_n of_o their_o faith_n 3_o again_o agree_v 2._o §._o 124._o n._n 2._o that_o this_o divine_a faith_n be_v wrought_v no_o otherwise_o in_o the_o soul_n than_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n fides_fw-la spirit_n see_v s._n thom._n 22._o q._n 6._o de_fw-fr causâ_fw-la fides_fw-la many_o time_n beget_v so_o firm_a a_o adherence_n to_o the_o thing_n believe_v not_o only_o that_o what_o be_v divine_a revelation_n can_v deceive_v but_o that_o such_o particular_a point_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o exceed_v that_o adherence_n we_o have_v to_o any_o humane_a science_n whatsoever_o wherein_o there_o be_v often_o a_o possibility_n of_o deceit_n though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n yet_o as_o to_o we_o i.e._n that_o we_o may_v think_v we_o know_v what_o and_o when_o we_o do_v not_o for_o this_o see_v the_o archbp_a 72._o archbp_a p._n 72._o faith_n he_o mean_v the_o habit_n or_o act_v of_o a_o save_a faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o a_o infuse_a habit_n in_o respect_n whereof_o the_o soul_n be_v mere_o recipient_a and_o therefore_o the_o sole_a infufer_n the_o holy_a ghost_n must_v not_o be_v exclude_v from_o that_o work_n which_o none_o can_v do_v but_o he_o which_o virtue_n of_o faith_n of_o whatever_o article_n though_o it_o receive_v a_o kind_n of_o preparation_n or_o occasion_n of_o beginning_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o propose_v and_o induce_v to_o the_o faith_n yet_o i●_n end_v in_o god_n reveal_v within_o and_o teach_v within_o that_o which_o the_o church_n preach_v without_o and_o p._n 75._o man_n do_v what_o he_o can_v be_v still_o apt_a to_o search_v and_o seek_v for_o a_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v believe_v though_o after_o he_o once_o believe_v his_o faith_n grow_v strong_a than_o either_o his_o reason_n or_o his_o knowledge_n and_o great_a reason_n for_o this_o because_o it_o go_v high_a and_o so_o upon_o a_o safe_a principle_n than_o either_o of_o the_o other_o reason_n or_o knowledge_n can_v in_o this_o life_n quote_v in_o the_o margin_n s_o thom._n 5._o thom._n p._n 1._o q._n 1._o a._n 5._o quia_fw-la s●ientiae_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la habent_fw-la ex_fw-la naturali_fw-la lumine_fw-la rationis_fw-la humanae_fw-la quae_fw-la potest_fw-la errare_fw-la theologia_n antem_fw-la quae_fw-la d●cet_fw-la &_o objectum_fw-la &_o
tradition_n namely_o that_o both_o of_o christian_n and_o mahometan_n than_o this_o that_o the_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n and_o yet_o this_o late_a carry_v with_o it_o a_o sufficient_a evidence_n and_o protestant_n themselves_o 2._o themselves_o see_v disc_n 2._o §._o 40._o n._n 2._o do_v both_o allow_v and_o practice_v several_a tradition_n as_o apostolical_a which_o yet_o have_v not_o the_o same_o fullness_n of_o tradition_n as_o the_o scripture_n nor_o indeed_o more_o than_o several_a of_o those_o point_n have_v whereof_o yet_o they_o deny_v a_o sufficient_a tradition_n 2._o again_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o small_a number_n of_o person_n if_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o miracle_n and_o other_o forename_a 121._o forename_a §._o 121._o motive_n of_o credit_n may_v be_v as_o or_o more_o credible_a than_o that_o of_o a_o great_a number_n not_o so_o qualify_v of_o several_a other_o tradition_n then_o what_o or_o how_o many_o in_o particular_a carry_v a_o sufficient_a fullness_n and_o evidence_n in_o they_o though_o all_o do_v not_o the_o same_o to_o beget_v a_o rational_a belief_n this_o after_o the_o church_n authority_n once_o establish_v by_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n private_a man_n may_v safe_o learn_v from_o the_o same_o church_n §_o 140_o but_o 8_o this_o certainty_n of_o tradition_n allow_v by_o protestant_n for_o scripture_n being_n god_n word_n and_o whatever_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o infallible_a seem_v unsufficient_a to_o assure_v to_o christian_n their_o faith_n in_o several_a article_n thereof_o because_o wherever_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o scripture_n be_v ambiguous_a it_o will_v still_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o such_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o true_a sense_n which_o only_o be_v god_n word_n or_o on_o the_o mistake_a sense_n which_o be_v not_o so_o next_o therefore_o catholic_n proceed_v far_a yet_o and_o both_o from_o the_o same_o scripture_n thus_o establish_v and_o from_o other_o constant_a tradition_n descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n for_o which_o see_v the_o proof_n give_v before_o disc_n 1._o §_o 7._o disc_n 2._o §_o 17._o &_o disc_n 3._o §_o 7._o 87._o etc._n etc._n do_v also_o gather_v and_o firm_o believe_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n or_o its_o governor_n for_o all_o necessary_n from_o a_o promise_v perpetual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o article_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o establish_v become_v to_o they_o a_o new_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n from_o which_o they_o do_v most_o firm_o believe_v and_o adhere_v to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n wherein_o the_o divine_a revelation_n either_o of_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n be_v not_o so_o perspicuous_a and_o clear_a to_o they_o as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o other_o of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o from_o this_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n believe_v all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o same_o church_n that_o be_v make_v in_o point_n where_o the_o true-sence_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o controversy_n and_o that_o be_v deliver_v by_o she_o as_o infallible_a and_o divine_a revelation_n be_v straight_o believe_v as_o such_o and_o among_o other_o these_o point_n also_o when_o the_o church_n define_v they_o in_o any_o doubtful_a case_n what_o belong_v to_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o what_o be_v tradition_n apostolical_a §_o 141_o thus_o if_o i_o first_o receive_v and_o believe_v the_o church-infallibility_a from_o a_o clear_a apostolical_a tradition_n afterward_o from_o this_o church-infallibility_a define_n it_o i_o may_v become_v straight_o assure_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o 2_o if_o i_o receive_v and_o believe_v some_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n from_o clear_a apostolical_a tradition_n and_o out_o of_o this_o receive_a canon_n become_v assure_v of_o church-infallibility_a afterward_o from_o this_o infallibility_n define_v it_o i_o may_v certain_o come_v to_o know_v other_o part_n of_o the_o same_o canon_n that_o be_v more_o question_v again_o when_o i_o have_v already_o learned_a the_o church-infallibility_a from_o the_o scripture_n afterward_o i_o may_v become_v from_o its_o definition_n settle_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o those_o article_n of_o faith_n wherein_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n though_o believe_v by_o i_o before_o the_o church_n infallibility_n yet_o be_v ambiguous_a in_o their_o sense_n which_o sense_n proper_o and_o not_o the_o word_n be_v the_o divine_a revelation_n can_v beget_v no_o certain_a and_o firm_a faith_n in_o i_o until_o they_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o church_n infallible_o relate_v from_o god_n spirit_n assist_v it_o the_o traditive_a sense_n of_o they_o to_o i_o so_o that_o though_o i_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o the_o church_n yet_o in_o so_o many_o point_n wherein_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a to_o i_o i_o receive_v the_o firmness_n of_o my_o faith_n in_o they_o not_o from_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o scripture_n expression_n of_o that_o which_o be_v god_n word_n but_o of_o the_o church_n expound_v they_o if_o then_o the_o scripture_n or_o tradition-apostolick_a be_v clear_a for_o this_o of_o church-infallibility_a than_o for_o some_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o person_n must_v necessary_o be_v concede_v to_o have_v a_o firm_a ground_n of_o his_o faith_n for_o so_o many_o point_n who_o believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a than_o another_o who_o believe_v only_a scripture_n so_o and_o such_o person_n also_o be_v preserve_v in_o a_o right_a faith_n in_o these_o point_n when_o the_o other_o not_o only_o may_v err_v in_o his_o faith_n but_o become_v heretical_a in_o his_o error_n by_o oppose_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o have_v the_o arrian_n and_o nestorian_n believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a this_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n firm_a and_o steadfast_a have_v preserve_v they_o from_o heresy_n in_o some_o other_o §_o 142_o here_o then_o appear_v a_o great_a firmness_n and_o stability_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o church-infallibility_a for_o many_o point_n wherein_o the_o protestant_n faith_n fluctuate_v and_o vary_v for_o whilst_o the_o protestant_n only_o extend_v and_o make_v use_v of_o the_o certitude_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n as_o to_o one_o of_o these_o point_n the_o delivery_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o acknowledge_v no_o further_a certitude_n of_o the_o same_o church-tradition_n write_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a for_o the_o other_o point_n the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n divine_o assist_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o discern_a of_o true_a tradition_n and_o again_o while_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o scripture_n in_o many_o weighty_a point_n as_o experience_n show_v have_v be_v and_o be_v controvert_v the_o protestant_a here_o for_o so_o many_o of_o these_o point_n as_o be_v upon_o such_o misinterpretation_n of_o scripture_n define_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o definition_n of_o which_o church_n assist_v as_o he_o believe_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o catholic_n remain_v secure_a have_v no_o rational_a anchor_n nor_o ground_n of_o confidence_n in_o his_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o rest_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n and_o truth_n of_o tradition_n and_o that_o judgement_n of_o his_o too_o for_o several_a point_n of_o his_o faith_n go_v against_o the_o judgement_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o against_o his_o superior_n where_o the_o last_o refuge_n protestant_n betake_v themselves_o to_o ordinary_o be_v this_o that_o they_o say_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o ambiguous_a but_o clear_a enough_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o that_o in_o point_n not_o necessary_a there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o a_o right_a faith_n or_o of_o any_o decision_n of_o controversy_n and_o so_o no_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n or_o any_o unerring_a guide_n save_v scripture_n which_o defence_n have_v be_v examine_v in_o disc_n 2._o §_o 38._o etc._n etc._n §_o 143_o the_o sum_n of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v here_o be_v this_o 1_o i_o take_v it_o as_o a_o principle_n agree_v on_o that_o a_o divine_a be_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o quatenus_fw-la divine_a ultimate_o resolve_v itself_o into_o divine_a revelation_n §_o 144_o 2_o there_o must_v be_v some_o particular_a ultimate_a divine_a revelation_n assign_v by_o every_o christian_a which_o may_v be_v not_o to_o all_o the_o same_o but_o to_o some_o one_o to_o some_o another_o beyond_o which_o he_o can_v resolve_v his_o divine_a faith_n no_o further_o and_o for_o prove_v or_o confirm_v which_o revelation_n he_o can_v produce_v no_o other_o divine_a revelation_n but_o there_o must_v end_v unless_o a_o process_n be_v make_v in_o infinitum_fw-la or_o a_o run_v
round_o fides_n divina_fw-la discursiva_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la circa_fw-la omne_fw-la objecta_fw-la sva_fw-la quia_fw-la alioquin_fw-la sequeretur_fw-la processus_fw-la in_o infinitum_fw-la layman_n p._n 181._o quote_v caietan_n in_o 22._o q._n 1._o art_n 1._o si_fw-la dicas_fw-la assentio_fw-la huic_fw-la revelato_fw-la ex_fw-la fide_fw-la acquisitâ_fw-la tunc_fw-la fides_fw-la infusa_fw-la dependeret_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la &_o infaciendo_fw-la adhaerere_fw-la alicui_fw-la articulo_fw-la à_fw-la fide_fw-la acquisite_a â_fw-la sicut_fw-la à_fw-la principio_fw-la scotus_n l._n 1.23_o d._n §_o contra_fw-la fid_fw-we §_o 145_o 3_o concern_v such_o ultimate_a particular_a divine_a revelation_n whether_o it_o be_v authority_n and_o veracity_n of_o scripture_n or_o authority_n and_o veracity_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o of_o miracle_n if_o we_o say_v further_o that_o we_o ground_n our_o divine_a faith_n of_o it_o upon_o god_n veracity_n or_o because_o god_n be_v true_a and_o can_v lie_v a_o undisputable_a prime_a principle_n yet_o note_n that_o god_n veracity_n alone_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o such_o faith_n of_o any_o particular_a revelation_n since_o on_o this_o veracity_n of_o god_n in_o general_a many_o false_a religion_n also_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v ground_v i._n e._n many_o false_a religion_n believe_v that_o whatever_o god_n say_v be_v true_a and_o further_o believe_v but_o false_o that_o god_n have_v say_v what_o they_o be_v teach_v unless_o another_o proposition_n be_v join_v with_o it_o viz._n that_o god_n who_o be_v thus_o true_a and_o can_v lie_v in_o whatever_o he_o say_v have_v also_o say_v this_o particular_a thing_n which_o we_o believe_v namely_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n or_o apostle_n or_o scripture_n our_o particular_a ultimate_a ground_n name_v before_o be_v true_a of_o which_o thus_o card._n lugo_n 7._o lugo_n de_fw-fr virtute_fw-la fidei_fw-la divin_fw-fr disp_n 1._o §._o 7._o duplex_fw-la est_fw-la ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la partialis_fw-la cvi_fw-la ultimò_fw-la fides_fw-la divina_fw-la nititur_fw-la 1._o deus_fw-la est_fw-la prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la et_fw-la 2._o deus_fw-mi it_o a_o dixit_fw-la and_o we_o know_v the_o certitude_n of_o any_o conclusion_n must_v always_o be_v build_v on_o two_o premise_n or_o principle_n and_o then_o let_v the_o first_o pass_v unquestioned_a deus_fw-la est_fw-la prima_fw-la veritas_fw-la the_o second_o that_o god_n have_v say_v this_o or_o that_o must_v either_o be_v ground_v that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n on_o some_o other_o divine_a revelation_n from_o which_o we_o collect_v that_o he_o have_v say_v it_o which_o still_o will_v proceed_v to_o the_o inquiry_n after_o another_o divine_a revelation_n on_o which_o to_o ground_n that_o or_o else_o i_o must_v rest_v there_o with_o a_o immediate_a assent_n to_o it_o and_o acknowledge_v that_o i_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n that_o he_o have_v say_v it_o which_o rely_v on_o any_o other_o divine_a revelation_n and_o then_o why_o may_v i_o not_o have_v rest_v as_o well_o in_o the_o forename_a revelation_n last_o concern_v that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o by_o due_a consequence_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o ultimate_n resolvent_fw-la of_o a_o christian_a faith_n those_o who_o disallow_v that_o which_o other_o assign_v let_v they_o assign_v another_o such_o as_o be_v true_o a_o divine_a revelation_n and_o not_o mistake_v only_o by_o they_o to_o be_v so_o as_o assign_v the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n take_v by_o they_o in_o a_o wrong_a sense_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o suffice_v §_o 146_o 4_o i_o take_v this_o also_o for_o agree_v on_o by_o all_o that_o the_o internal_a efficient_a of_o all_o faith_n divine_a be_v the_o power_n or_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n both_o *_o illuminate_n the_o understanding_n that_o the_o prime_a verity_n can_v lie_v in_o whatever_o thing_n it_o reveal_v if_o perhaps_o the_o understanding_n herein_o need_v any_o light_n and_o also_o that_o the_o particular_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v its_o revelation_n *_o and_o persuade_v and_o operate_n in_o the_o will_v such_o a_o firm_a adherence_n unto_o these_o article_n as_o many_o time_n far_o exceed_v that_o of_o any_o humane_a science_n or_o demonstration_n §_o 147_o 5_o now_o then_o if_o any_o christian_a be_v ask_v concern_v the_o ultimate_a resolution_n of_o his_o divine_a faith_n as_o to_o the_o extrinsical_a prime_a motive_n ground_n reason_n or_o principle_n thereof_o that_o equal_v in_o certainty_n the_o faith_n build_v on_o it_o he_o can_v allege_v none_o other_o than_o that_o particular_a divine_a revelation_n which_o be_v first_o make_v know_v to_o he_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o matter_n not_o since_o this_o vary_v as_o to_o several_a person_n or_o from_o which_o in_o build_v of_o his_o faith_n he_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n again_o if_o any_o ask_v concern_v the_o internal_a efficient_a of_o such_o faith_n as_o be_v divine_a the_o answer_n must_v always_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o for_o the_o divine_a faith_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o faithful_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n §_o 148_o 6_o the_o motive_n foremention_v which_o be_v such_o a_o rational_a evidence_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o the_o several_a article_n thereof_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o no_o other_o foreign_a religion_n or_o s●ct_n in_o christianity_n can_v produce_v do_v serve_v indeed_o antecedent_o for_o a_o introductive_a to_o or_o after_o it_o introduce_v for_o a_o confirmative_a of_o this_o divine_a faith_n i._n e._n to_o make_v it_o credible_a or_o acceptable_a to_o humane_a reason_n my_o own_o or_o other_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v true_a and_o no_o way_n liable_a to_o error_n that_o i_o be_o assure_v in_o it_o by_o the_o holy_a and_o no_o seduce_v spirit_n but_o not_o to_o constitute_v it_o in_o the_o notion_n of_o faith_n divine_a because_o the_o faith_n so_o style_v be_v suppose_v to_o rest_v always_o on_o a_o high_a ground_n viz._n revelation_n divine_a §_o 149_o and_o by_o what_o have_v be_v here_o say_v i_o think_v you_o may_v perceive_v the_o circle_n clear_o avoid_v which_o be_v still_o so_o hot_o charge_v on_o catholic_n though_o not_o for_o the_o resolution_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o general_n which_o rest_v in_o the_o last_o place_n on_o the_o prudential_a motive_n yet_o for_o the_o resolution_n at_o least_o of_o the_o divine_a faith_n they_o pretend_v to_o for_o if_o a_o protestant_n ask_v at_o large_a why_o i_o believe_v without_o insert_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v answer_v because_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n or_o divine_a revelation_n a_o thing_n concede_v by_o the_o archbp_a 81._o archbp_a p._n 81._o testify_v it_o to_o be_v so_o again_o if_o ask_v why_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v any_o such_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n which_o i_o believe_v in_o this_o matter_n infallible_a or_o not_o err_v deliver_v such_o tradition_n to_o i_o and_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v again_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a in_o this_o it_o be_v answer_v i_o believe_v she_o but_o this_o be_v by_o a_o acquisite_a faith_n to_o be_v so_o from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n foremention_v 121._o foremention_v §._o 121._o which_o do_v so_o persuade_v i_o but_o note_n that_o this_o acquisite_a faith_n be_v not_o a_o necessary_a prerequisite_a to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n for_o as_o layman_n 5._o layman_n theol._n moral_a l._n 2._o tract_n 1._o c._n 5._o non_fw-fr omnes_fw-la eodem_fw-la modo_fw-la sed_fw-la alii_fw-la aliter_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la christi_fw-la amplectendam_fw-la moventur_fw-la and_o as_o estius_n before_o 129._o before_o see_v §._o 129._o fidei_fw-la impertinens_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la medio_fw-la deus_fw-la utatur_fw-la ad_fw-la conferendum_fw-la homini_fw-la donum_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o in_o all_o this_o protestant_n confess_v there_o be_v no_o circle_n 126._o circle_n see_v stillingf_n p._n 126._o §_o 150_o but_o if_o now_o put_v in_o the_o word_n divine_a the_o protestant_n 127._o protestant_n id_fw-la p._n 127._o ask_v i_o again_o the_o two_o former_a question_n why_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o then_o upon_o the_o former_a answer_n return_v ask_v i_o why_o 2_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i._n e._n with_o such_o a_o firm_a assent_n as_o i_o give_v thereto_o transcend_v that_o of_o a_o acquisite_a faith_n i_o do_v believe_v that_o which_o the_o church_n relate_v as_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v so_o indeed_o i_o answer_v now_o that_o i_o final_o rest_v on_o this_o revelation_n without_o have_v any_o other_o whereon_o to_o ground_v it_o but_o if_o ask_v why_o so_o firm_o and_o if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v divine_o without_o any_o further_a
divine_a evidence_n i_o adhere_v to_o it_o i_o answer_v from_o the_o internal_a operation_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o spirit_n cause_v a_o most_o firm_a fiducial_a assent_n in_o i_o that_o these_o scripture_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n as_o god_n word_n by_o apostolical_a tradition_n for_o the_o church_n pretend_v no_o new_a revelation_n concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n i._n e._n be_v deliver_v by_o those_o divine_o preserve_v from_o any_o fallibility_n therein_o neither_o do_v here_o again_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n appear_v any_o circle_n at_o all_o and_o if_o it_o be_v further_o ask_v what_o rational_a ground_n i_o have_v to_o think_v this_o be_v a_o persuasion_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o some_o evil_n spirit_n or_o this_o indeed_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o i_o be_o tell_v be_v so_o here_o i_o urge_v for_o these_o the_o prudential_a motive_n §_o 151_o again_o suppose_v i_o be_v ask_v concern_v some_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n though_o the_o same_o article_n do_v not_o appear_v to_o i_o clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o scripture_n why_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o do_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v perpetual_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o be_v infallible_a for_o ever_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n define_v by_o she_o have_v deliver_v it_o to_o i_o as_o such_o if_o again_o why_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o believe_v these_o scripture_n in_o general_n or_o such_o a_o sense_n of_o those_o text_n in_o particular_a which_o be_v pretend_v to_o reveal_v the_o church_n infallibility_n to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n i_o answer_v as_o before_o because_o apostolical_a tradition_n have_v deliver_v they_o to_o be_v so_o which_o apostolical_a tradition_n relate_v or_o convey_v to_o i_o by_o the_o church_n i_o believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n by_o the_o internal_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n without_o have_v at_o all_o any_o further_a divine_a revelation_n from_o which_o i_o shall_v believe_v this_o revelation_n to_o be_v divine_a or_o if_o any_o will_v go_v one_o step_n further_o and_o prove_v this_o apostolical_a tradition_n also_o divine_a from_o the_o divine_a work_n the_o apostle_n do_v miracle_n yet_o here_o he_o must_v conclude_v neither_o have_v we_o any_o further_a divine_a word_n or_o work_v to_o confirm_v to_o we_o their_o do_v such_o divine_a work_n but_o then_o if_o i_o be_v ask_v further_o whether_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n the_o church_n relation_n concern_v such_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o miracle_n to_o be_v infallible_a i_o exclude_v now_o this_o supposition_n which_o in_o the_o order_n of_o these_o question_n be_v in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v exclude_v viz._n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o exclude_v this_o answer_n that_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n relation_n infallible_a with_o a_o divine_a faith_n from_o the_o testimony_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v to_o the_o church_n here_o i_o answer_v no_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n this_o relation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a for_o divine_a faith_n build_v upon_o nothing_o but_o divine_a revelation_n and_o if_o i_o be_v to_o bring_v another_o divine_a revelation_n still_o to_o support_v my_o faith_n of_o the_o former_a so_o must_v i_o also_o bring_v yet_o a_o further_a divine_a revelation_n for_o this_o my_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o here_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la but_o in_o this_o place_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n tradition_n or_o testimony_n be_v take_v here_o in_o the_o latter_a sense_n mention_v before_o §_o 126_o infallible_a only_o with_o a_o humane_a and_o acquisite_a faith_n build_v on_o the_o forename_a prudential_a motive_n and_o the_o ultimate_a resolution_n here_o of_o my_o divine_a faith_n be_v into_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o their_o miracle_n not_o the_o church-tradition_n or_o her_o relation_n that_o convey_v to_o i_o the_o apostolical_a with_o a_o divine_a faith_n i_o do_v believe_v the_o apostolical_a tradition_n relate_v by_o the_o church_n but_o i_o do_v believe_v the_o church_n she_o true_o or_o infallible_o i_o mean_v not_o as_o infallible_o here_o relate_v to_o the_o divine_a promise_n but_o to_o the_o prudential_a motive_n relate_v this_o apostolical_a tradition_n with_o a_o acquire_v or_o rational_a faith_n §_o 152_o the_o natural_a order_n of_o a_o christian_n belief_n then_o seem_v to_o be_v this_o 1_o the_o divine_a revelation_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o world_n by_o certain_a person_n choose_v by_o god_n and_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o mission_n from_o he_o do_v miracle_n which_o person_n also_o be_v command_v by_o god_n to_o ordain_v other_o to_o divulge_v and_o perpetuate_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o same_o revelation_n to_o mankind_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o chief_a body_n of_o which_o these_o person_n also_o draw_v up_o and_o deliver_v in_o writing_n of_o which_o divine_a revelation_n deliver_v by_o they_o this_o be_v one_o that_o these_o their_o successor_n shall_v for_o ever_o be_v so_o far_o assist_v by_o god_n holy_a spirit_n as_o never_o to_o err_v in_o teach_v all_o truth_n or_o if_o you_o will_v in_o true_o relate_v all_o divine_a revelation_n any_o way_n necessary_a to_o man_n salvation_n which_o divine_a revelation_n also_o concern_v themselves_o be_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v deliver_v among_o the_o rest_n to_o all_o posterity_n by_o these_o very_a successor_n of_o who_o it_o be_v speak_v these_o thing_n thus_o convey_v those_o to_o who_o these_o revelation_n be_v make_v do_v 1._o with_o a_o rational_a and_o acquisite_a faith_n believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o these_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v render_v most_o credible_a to_o they_o by_o all_o those_o prudential_a motive_n mention_v before_o §_o 121._o their_o multitude_n their_o sanctity_n their_o martyrdom_n in_o testimony_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n 2._o but_o then_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o thing_n relate_v which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v reveal_v and_o deliver_v first_o by_o god_n to_o person_n assist_v with_o most_o infallible_a miracle_n they_o do_v believe_v these_o thing_n relate_v after_o the_o manner_n express_v before_o §_o 134._o with_o yet_o a_o high_a and_o a_o divine_a faith_n wrought_v in_o they_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o rest_v itself_o not_o on_o the_o veracity_n of_o these_o secondary_a relator_n but_o on_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n himself_o from_o who_o these_o revelation_n be_v say_v original_o to_o come_v yet_o the_o rational_a introductive_a to_o all_o this_o faith_n be_v the_o veracity_n of_o those_o who_o immediate_o convey_v the_o tradition_n of_o these_o thing_n to_o they_o 3._o then_o further_a one_o of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n which_o the_o church_n or_o these_o successor_n do_v deliver_v to_o christian_n as_o i_o say_v be_v this_o that_o these_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o deliver_v their_o doctrine_n to_o we_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o infallible_a in_o deliver_v all_o necessary_n from_o this_o revelation_n i_o say_v deliver_v by_o they_o christian_n also_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o this_o church_n or_o of_o these_o successor_n not_o by_o a_o rational_a faith_n only_o ground_v on_o the_o former_a motive_n of_o credibility_n but_o by_o a_o divine_a faith_n because_o ground_v on_o a_o divine_a revelation_n and_o consequent_o believe_v also_o all_o thing_n deliver_v by_o these_o person_n as_o necessary_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n on_o the_o same_o account_n §_o 153_o after_o all_o this_o to_o reflect_v now_o a_o little_a on_o the_o objection_n we_o see_v 1_o that_o no_o circle_n be_v make_v in_o a_o catholic_n ground_n or_o resolution_n of_o faith_n divine_a or_o acquisite_a but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o ultimate_a revelation_n divine_a though_o this_o not_o necessary_a to_o be_v always_o the_o same_o whereon_o divine_a faith_n rest_v and_o into_o which_o and_o no_o humane_a motive_n it_o resolve_v itself_o and_o a_o inward_a operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n whereby_o the_o firmness_n of_o adherence_n of_o this_o faith_n to_o such_o revelation_n in_o particular_a as_o divine_v be_v effect_v and_o again_o that_o these_o be_v motive_n from_o humane_a authority_n sufficient_o credible_a or_o also_o moral_o infallible_a or_o as_o some_o of_o late_o express_v themselves_o not-possibly-fallible_a which_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v whenas_o it_o be_v in_o the_o natural_a power_n of_o all_o man_n even_o take_v collective_o abstract_v here_o from_o any_o divine_a superintendency_n to_o tell_v a_o lie_n none_o have_v reason_n to_o envy_v any_o advance_n of_o the_o evidence_n of_o christian_a religion_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o
but_o here_o seem_v no_o necessity_n of_o pretend_v any_o other_o infallibility_n in_o these_o motive_n than_o catholic_n writer_n have_v former_o maintain_v and_o the_o adversary_n also_o allow_v on_o which_o a_o acquire_v or_o humane_a faith_n secure_o rest_v these_o motive_n carry_v such_o a_o evidence_n with_o they_o as_o no_o other_o religion_n differ_v from_o the_o christian_a nor_o in_o christianity_n any_o sect_n divide_v from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n can_v upon_o any_o rational_a account_n equal_a 2_o that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n and_o believe_v by_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v a_o main_a ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n for_o any_o other_o article_n thereof_o that_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o same_o church_n definition_n where_o the_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n apostolic_a be_v to_o he_o but_o i_o say_v not_o the_o church_n doubtful_a of_o which_o ground_n and_o assurance_n of_o such_o point_n believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n the_o protestant_n faith_n be_v destitute_a 3_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o such_o article_n ground_v thus_o on_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n be_v by_o this_o ground_v also_o on_o divine_a revelation_n where_v note_n that_o resolve_v faith_n into_o the_o church_n infallibility_n i_o mean_v as_o the_o church_n be_v declare_v thus_o infallible_a in_o necessary_n by_o god_n word_n or_o divine_a revelation_n whether_o write_v the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n apostolical_a or_o into_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o into_o scripture_n be_v in_o general_a all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o resolution_n i._n e._n into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o ultimate_o be_v only_o believe_v a_o thing_n because_o god_n say_v it_o say_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o also_o out_o of_o they_o by_o his_o apostle_n or_o by_o the_o church_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n by_o it_o i_o say_v as_o declare_v by_o god_n word_n to_o be_v also_o infallible_o assist_v true_o to_o relate_v and_o expound_v what_o the_o apostle_n or_o scripture_n have_v former_o say_v where_o still_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v into_o the_o same_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o these_o and_o not_o into_o any_o proper_a authority_n or_o infallibility_n of_o the_o deliverer_n and_o when_o we_o say_v we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n or_o of_o the_o apostle_n we_o mean_v into_o god_n infallible_a word_n deliver_v mediate_o by_o the_o one_o or_o immediate_o by_o the_o other_o and_o whilst_o to_o one_o that_o ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o scripture_n i_o answer_v because_o those_o who_o write_v they_o be_v assist_v by_o god_n spirit_n to_o deliver_v to_o man_n those_o divine_a revelation_n and_o again_o to_o one_o that_o ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o church_n i_o answer_v because_o the_o church_n be_v for_o ever_o assist_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n faithful_o to_o relate_v and_o expound_v these_o former_a divine_a revelation_n deliver_v by_o those_o who_o write_v the_o scripture_n in_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n here_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o if_o one_o of_o these_o resolution_n be_v into_o divine_a revelation_n impart_v and_o communicate_v to_o man_n by_o god_n spirit_n so_o must_v the_o other_o though_o the_o manner_n of_o convey_v they_o to_o we_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n be_v different_a as_o be_v explain_v before_o §_o 109._o and_o have_v the_o new_a testament_n scripture_n not_o be_v write_v as_o they_o may_v have_v be_v not_o write_v without_o nullify_a the_o being_n of_o christian_a religion_n than_o all_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n will_v have_v be_v only_o into_o the_o unwritten_a testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o from_o they_o of_o the_o church_n follow_v they_o to_o which_o church_n for_o ever_o though_o without_o any_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o same_o promise_n must_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v make_v for_o the_o write_n of_o these_o scripture_n sure_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o these_o promise_n and_o next_o these_o promise_n may_v also_o have_v be_v make_v know_v to_o christian_n by_o tradition_n apostolical_a relate_v only_o by_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o same_o credence_n must_v have_v be_v give_v to_o this_o tradition_n apostolical_a relate_v by_o the_o church_n concern_v such_o promise_n make_v to_o it_o as_o be_v now_o give_v to_o the_o scripture_n testify_v it_o 4_o yet_o that_o this_o church-infallibility_a or_o that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o establish_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_o the_o first_o or_o the_o ultimate_a divine_a revelation_n into_o which_o every_o catholick_n faith_n concern_v any_o particular_a point_n of_o his_o belief_n be_v necessary_o resolve_v for_o the_o divine_a faith_n of_o several_a person_n concern_v particular_a point_n may_v have_v a_o various_a resolution_n as_o they_o come_v by_o divers_a way_n or_o from_o divers_a principle_n to_o believe_v it_o and_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v save_o believe_v without_o the_o present_a knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o another_o whereon_o it_o have_v dependence_n as_o one_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o divine_a faith_n either_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o church_n infallibility_n from_o apostolical_a tradition_n one_o before_o the_o other_o as_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v first_o propose_v to_o they_o of_o which_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 128.145_o and_o by_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o faith_n ground_v thereon_o attain_v eternal_a salvation_n and_o bless_v be_v his_o divine_a majesty_n for_o so_o firm_o establish_v christianity_n one_o these_o two_o sure_a base_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n for_o both_o be_v pillar_n of_o truth_n 3.15_o truth_n 1_o tim._n 3.15_o and_o both_o always_o bear_v witness_n as_o to_o it_o so_o also_o to_o one_o another_o and_o what_o thou_o have_v thus_o join_v o_o lord_n let_v no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o separate_v nor_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n ever_o so_o far_o prevail_v against_o they_o as_o that_o any_o shall_v prosper_v in_o their_o endeavour_n to_o build_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o one_o out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o other_o amen_n §_o thus_o much_o be_v say_v concern_v the_o necessary_a resolution_n of_o a_o catholick_n faith_n conclusion_n the_o conclusion_n and_o in_o satisfaction_n to_o those_o other_o objection_n that_o be_v urge_v against_o a_o live_a ecclesiastical_a infallible_a guide_n in_o all_o necessary_n maintain_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o affirm_v also_o easy_o discernible_a from_o all_o other_o pretender_n after_o all_o which_o in_o the_o last_o place_n the_o protestant_a reader_n be_v humble_o desire_v sober_o to_o consider_v with_o himself_o whether_o if_o indeed_o there_o be_v such_o a_o catholic_n unfailing_a guide_n as_o be_v here_o pretend_a and_o that_o church_n also_o who_o conduct_n he_o have_v renounce_v be_v it_o who_o our_o lord_n have_v leave_v amid_o the_o distraction_n of_o so_o many_o sect_n and_o opinion_n to_o bring_v man_n by_o a_o sure_a way_n to_o heaven_n whether_o i_o say_v notwithstanding_o all_o those_o reason_n and_o argument_n that_o have_v be_v here_o and_o be_v elsewhere_o by_o catholic_n frequent_o urge_v in_o demonstration_n thereof_o yet_o his_o ignorance_n thereof_o still_o remain_v so_o innocent_a and_o invincible_a that_o he_o dare_v rely_v on_o this_o plea_n at_o the_o appearance_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o his_o live_n and_o die_v irreconcile_a unto_o she_o because_o no_o sufficient_a evidence_n have_v be_v leave_v he_o to_o discern_v she_o and_o next_o to_o consider_v whether_o if_o indeed_o she_o be_v what_o here_o she_o be_v pretend_v there_o can_v be_v any_o secular_a interest_n so_o valuable_a as_o any_o way_n to_o recompense_v the_o loss_n he_o sustain_v in_o his_o present_a separation_n from_o this_o church_n by_o forego_v all_o that_o mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o growth_n in_o grace_n and_o advantage_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n which_o he_o may_v with_o great_a spiritual_a content_n enjoy_v in_o her_o happy_a bosom_n of_o which_o advantage_n because_o they_o be_v by_o few_o of_o those_o depart_v from_o this_o church_n so_o well_o weigh_v as_o they_o ought_v for_o a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o beg_v leave_v not_o to_o stay_v only_o in_o universals_z but_o to_o represent_v some_o particular_n to_o the_o beget_n in_o he_o by_o the_o aid_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n a_o holy_a emulation_n and_o longing_n for_o the_o re-fruition_n of_o they_o and_o a_o great_a resentment_n of_o his_o present_a impediment_n and_o defect_n §_o 155_o let_v he_o then_o in_o the_o name_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n consider_v the_o great_a benefit_n as_o to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o salvation_n which_o he_o may_v happy_o enjoy_v in_o this_o church_n by_o these_o particular_n follow_v *_o by_o
infallible_a yet_o how_o can_v any_o know_v infallible_o which_o be_v lawful_a general_n council_n because_o of_o the_o many_o condition_n require_v to_o make_v they_o such_o in_o some_o one_o of_o which_o he_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o any_o one_o of_o they_o hat_n not_o fail_v §_o 114._o chap._n 10._o 15._o q._n last_o catholic_n pretend_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o divine_a faith_n necessary_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n it_o be_v ask_v upon_o what_o ground_n a_o christian_a by_o a_o divine_a faith_n believe_v all_o those_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o be_v define_v by_o particular_a council_n where_o if_o say_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o former_a manner_n i._n e._n by_o divine_a revelation_n infallible_a the_o question_n return_v whence_o this_o testimony_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n infallible_a without_o make_v a_o circle_n in_o prove_v this_o present_a church_n to_o be_v so_o infallible_a from_o god_n word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a and_o then_o again_o prove_v infallible_o such_o to_o have_v be_v god_n word_n from_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n nor_o can_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o to_o ground_v divine_a faith_n upon_o it_o from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n or_o from_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o only_o from_o a_o divine_a revelation_n i._n e._n from_o god_n word_n because_o divine_a faith_n can_v never_o resolve_v itself_o into_o any_o ground_n that_o be_v not_o divine_a revelation_n §_o 120._o to_o which_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o the_o object_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o in_o itself_o infallible_a §_o 123._o 2._o that_o divine_a faith_n always_o ultimate_o resolve_v itself_o into_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o into_o some_o one_o wherein_o it_o ultimate_o rest_v without_o a_o process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la or_o turn_v in_o a_o circle_n §_o 124._o n._n 1._o 132._o 143_o 144._o 3._o that_o divine_a faith_n be_v always_o wrought_v in_o christian_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n §_o 124._o n._n 2._o 4._o that_o from_o the_o operation_n of_o this_o h._n spirit_n may_v be_v produce_v in_o christian_n a_o sufficient_a certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n whatever_o uncertainty_n be_v in_o the_o extrinsical_a proponent_a thereof_o §_o 125._o 5._o that_o church-tradition_n in_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o divine_a revelation_n be_v only_o the_o introductive_a not_o the_o object_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n §_o 126._o 6._o that_o there_o in_o no_o absolute_a need_n either_o of_o it_o or_o any_o other_o extrinsical_a infallible_a introductive_a or_o proponent_n for_o a_o christian_n be_v attain_n a_o divine_a faith_n §_o 127._o 7._o yet_o that_o there_o be_v those_o morally-certain_a ground_n produceable_a for_o this_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o no_o other_o religion_n beside_o the_o christian_a nor_o in_o christianity_n no_o other_o sect_n or_o seduce_v private_a spirit_n can_v pretend_v to_o §_o 135._o that_o a_o rational_a certainty_n or_o morally-infallible_a ground_n of_o a_o christian_n faith_n thus_o far_o at_o least_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o whatever_o be_v contain_v therein_o infallible_a be_v affirm_v by_o all_o §_o 136._o 8._o but_o further_o that_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n as_o perpetual_o assist_v by_o the_o h._n ghost_n for_o all_o necessary_n wherein_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o verity_n of_o tradition_n apostolical_a be_v question_v and_o dispute_v be_v believe_v by_o catholic_n from_o which_o infallibility_n of_o these_o church-guide_n clear_o reveal_v to_o they_o in_o scripture_n and_o by_o tradition_n apostolical_a they_o retain_v a_o firm_a faith_n of_o all_o those_o point_n which_o be_v not_o in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n as_o to_o all_o man_n so_o clear_o reveal_v whilst_o other_o deny_v the_o infallibility_n of_o these_o church-guide_n and_o only_o allow_v that_o of_o scripture_n miscarry_v in_o their_o faith_n concern_v some_o of_o the_o other_o point_n or_o can_v have_v no_o firm_a ground_n of_o their_o believe_v they_o §_o 140._o show_v from_o the_o precedent_n that_o no_o circle_n be_v make_v in_o the_o roman_a catholick_n resolve_v either_o of_o a_o divine_a and_o infuse_v or_o acquisite_a and_o humane_a faith_n §_o 143._o etc._n etc._n chap._n 11._o a_o supplement_n to_o the_o four_o chap._n 26_o §_o wherein_o be_v show_v a_o consent_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o modern_a eastern_a church_n with_o the_o occidental_a in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o present_a controversy_n 1._o transubstantiation_n §_o 158._o n._n 2._o 177._o 2._o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n §_o 159._o 177._o 3._o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n §_o 160._o n._n 1._o 177._o 4._o invocation_n of_o saint_n §_o 161._o 5._o prayer_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a depart_v as_o betterable_a thereby_o in_o their_o present_a condition_n §_o 162._o 6._o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n or_o of_o the_o symbol_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n only_o intinct_a §_o 163.178_o 7._o a_o relative_n veneration_n of_o image_n or_o picture_n §_o ibid._n 8._o monastic_a vow_n and_o marriage_n deny_v the_o clergy_n after_o the_o take_n of_o holy_a order_n §_o 164._o and_o §_o 179._o n._n 1._o 9_o auricular_a or_o sacramental_a confession_n §_o 165.179_o n._n 2._o the_o reply_v make_v hereto_o by_o protestant_n consider_v §_o 182._o etc._n etc._n the_o four_o discourse_n contain_v the_o socinian_o apology_n for_o the_o be_v believe_v and_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o former_a church-definition_n and_o present_a church-authority_n upon_o the_o protestant-ground_n divide_v into_o five_o conference_n the_o first_o conf._n of_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 2._o the_o second_o conf._n of_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o as_o this_o can_v just_o oblige_v §_o 13_o the_o three_o conf._n nor_o contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n the_o just_a condition_n thereof_o observe_v §_o 18._o the_o four_o conf._n of_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n §_o 23._o the_o five_o conf._n nor_o of_o schism_n §_o 28._o the_o first_o discourse_n relate_v and_o consider_v the_o vary_v judgement_n of_o learned_a protestant_n concern_v the_o ecclesiastical_a guide_n chap._n i._n the_o church_n catholic_n grant_v by_o all_o in_o some_o sense_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o for_o ever_o §_o 1._o of_o protestant_a divine_n i._o some_o grant_v the_o church_n catholic_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n but_o not_o as_o a_o guide_n §_o 3._o r._n thatthe_a divine_a promise_n of_o indefectibility_n or_o not_o err_v in_o necessary_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n catholic_n as_o a_o guide_n or_o to_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n §_o 6._o §_o 1_o first_o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o any_o age_n whatever_o be_v unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o fundamental_o the_o church_n catholic_n grant_v by_o all_o in_o some_o sense_n unerrable_a for_o ever_o in_o fundamental_o or_o absolute_a necessary_n to_o salvation_n both_o by_o roman-catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v grant_v for_o otherwise_o in_o some_o age_n there_o will_v be_v no_o church_n catholic_n error_n in_o such_o fundamental_o destroy_v the_o very_a be_v of_o a_o church_n §_o 2_o but_o when_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n it_o be_v by_o catholic_n ascend_v to_o the_o governor_n or_o guide_n thereof_o to_o who_o this_o church_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o lord_n depart_v hence_o that_o they_o be_v also_o by_o our_o lord_n promise_v and_o assistance_n unerrable_a in_o their_o decree_n they_o at_o least_o in_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n of_o they_o such_o as_o the_o time_n wherein_o such_o council_n be_v assemble_v do_v permit_v unerrable_a §_o 3_o at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o to_o necessary_n here_o the_o protestant_n make_v a_o stop_n guide_n 1._o 1._o some_o protestant-divines_a grant_v the_o church_n catholic_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n but_o not_o as_o a_o guide_n and_o seem_v to_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o in_o 12_o their_o judgement_n mr._n ch_n llingworth_a in_o his_o answer_n to_o f._n knot_n and_o after_o he_o dr._n hammond_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o exception_n make_v against_o the_o lord_n falkland_n discourse_n of_o infallibility_n with_o their_o follower_n in_o this_o point_n among_o who_o i_o number_v the_o two_o late_a replier_n 20._o replier_n see_v mr._n stillingf_n p._n 154_o 251_o 252_o 514_o 517.55_o whitby_n c._n
great_a necessity_n *_o that_o these_o church-governor_n shall_v be_v enable_v exact_o to_o distinguish_v these_o 7._o prop._n 7._o as_o to_o all_o particular_n or_o *_o that_o catholic_n shall_v learn_v such_o distinction_n from_o their_o governor_n than_o that_o protestant_n shall_v learn_v it_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o answer_n which_o protestant_n give_v for_o a_o nonnecessity_n of_o this_o latter_a viz._n because_o who_o believe_v all_o the_o scripture_n believe_v all_o necessary_n reveal_v in_o it_o they_o may_v take_v for_o a_o nonnecessity_n of_o the_o other_o because_o who_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o church_n define_v believe_v all_o necessary_n define_v by_o it_o neither_o again_o can_v the_o protestant_n just_o require_v any_o certainty_n explicitness_n or_o distinction_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o proposal_n of_o the_o church_n which_o distinction_n etc._n etc._n themselves_o do_v not_o maintain_v or_o think_v necessary_a concern_v the_o proposal_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n so_o if_o the_o protestant_a divine_n grant_v a_o sufficient_a certainty_n as_o they_o do_v 160._o do_v see_v mr._n chillingw_o p._n 160._o in_o a_o christian_n faith_n who_o believe_v all_o fundamental_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n *_o though_o meanwhile_n he_o know_v not_o from_o the_o same_o scripture_n which_o or_o how_o many_o they_o be_v nor_o either_o the_o protestant-guide_n or_o their_o follower_n out_o of_o these_o scripture_n can_v make_v any_o certain_a catalogue_n of_o they_o and_z *_o though_o they_o also_o may_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n err_v and_o mistake_v so_o that_o they_o only_o build_v a_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o faith_n upon_o this_o hypothetical_a certainty_n that_o if_o the_o point_n be_v necessary_a they_o use_v a_o due_a industry_n can_v err_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o such_o scripture_n because_o all_o necessary_n god_n have_v in_o these_o scripture_n clear_o reveal_v then_o they_o can_v deny_v the_o same_o sufficient_a certaînty_n of_o a_o catholic_n faith_n that_o believe_v all_o fundamental_o from_o the_o proposal_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a guide_n if_o these_o guide_n be_v grant_v in_o these_o infallible_a though_o neither_o he_o nor_o these_o guide_n shall_v certain_o know_v for_o all_o point_n which_o or_o how_o many_o these_o fundamental_o be_v §_o 13_o very_o vain_a therefore_o seem_v that_o discourse_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n c._n 3._o §_o 57_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o this_o purpose_n to_o show_v upon_o the_o non-distinction_n of_o fundamental_o or_o the_o suppose_a liability_n of_o church-guide_n to_o err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a the_o uncertainty_n or_o unsufficiency_n of_o a_o catholic_n faith_n as_o also_o ridiculous_a that_o argue_v of_o his_o where_o when_o catholic_n say_v they_o be_v certain_a concern_v every_o particular_a point_n propose_v by_o the_o church_n that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a she_o err_v not_o in_o it_o i.e._n err_v not_o in_o what_o she_o determine_v concern_v it_o or_o err_v not_o in_o determine_v any_o thing_n against_o it_o he_o faith_n they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v certain_a that_o if_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a truth_n the_o church_n do_v not_o err_v in_o it_o i._n e._n in_o hold_v it_o which_o faith_n he_o be_v in_o plain_a english_a to_o say_v you_o be_v certain_a it_o be_v true_a if_o it_o be_v both_o true_a and_o necessary_a §_o 14_o 2_o neither_o do_v it_o follow_v from_o these_o church-guide_n suppose_a inability_n exact_o to_o distinguish_v necessary_n from_o non_fw-la necessary_n that_o therefore_o they_o be_v or_o can_v be_v no_o infallible_a guide_n in_o all_o necessary_n that_o be_v in_o teach_v and_o prescribe_v they_o though_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o in_o distinguish_v they_o and_o in_o their_o teach_n nothing_o beside_o togesh_a with_o they_o nor_o be_v that_o consequence_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n 150_o chillingworth_n p._n 105_o 150_o true_a that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o society_n of_o man_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o they_o must_v be_v so_o also_o in_o declare_v what_o be_v fundamental_a or_o necessary_a what_o not_o unless_o upon_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o declare_v thereof_o be_v also_o a_o thing_n necessary_a as_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v it_o for_o i_o may_v be_v certain_o by_o the_o divine_a goodness_n preserve_v from_o error_n in_o many_o truth_n which_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o certain_o know_v that_o they_o be_v truth_n and_o again_o further_o may_v certain_o know_v something_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o teach_v it_o to_o other_o and_o yet_o not_o further_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n so_o absolute_o necessary_a as_o perhaps_o it_o be_v to_o use_v mr._n chillingworths_n simile_n 159._o simile_n p._n 159._o a_o physician_n in_o his_o use_n of_o a_o medicine_n consist_v of_o twenty_o ingredient_n of_o which_o medicine_n he_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o whole_a receipt_n have_v in_o it_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o the_o cure_n of_o such_o a_o disease_n yet_o may_v not_o exact_o know_v whether_o all_o the_o ingredient_n thereof_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a or_o only_o some_o of_o they_o necessary_a the_o rest_n only_o profitable_a and_o requisite_a ad_fw-la melius_fw-la esse_fw-la or_o some_o only_a necessary_a some_o profitable_a and_o the_o rest_n superfluous_a yet_o not_o hurtful_a as_o also_o the_o protestant_n grant_v that_o the_o church_n in_o deliver_v the_o scripture_n deliver_v all_o necessary_a truth_n therein_o yet_o without_o punctual_o know_v what_o or_o how_o many_o they_o be_v §_o 15_o 3_o it_o seem_v most_o reasonable_a that_o a_o guide_n of_o who_o not_o err_v in_o necessary_n 3._o 3._o i_o be_o secure_a but_o neither_o i_o nor_o it_o can_v exact_o distinguish_v such_o from_o non-necessaries_a shall_v be_v believe_v by_o i_o in_o all_o it_o propose_v though_o in_o some_o proposal_n it_o shall_v be_v liable_a to_o error_n i_o must_v add_v one_o exception_n indeed_o if_o that_o in_o no_o particular_a which_o it_o propose_v i_o be_o infallible_o certain_a of_o the_o contrary_a for_o then_o in_o such_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o the_o tenent_n of_o this_o guide_n can_v be_v no_o fundamental_a truth_n because_o not_o truth_n but_o first_o this_o exception_n be_v unserviceable_a to_o all_o those_o which_o be_v the_o most_o as_o can_v plead_v no_o such_o infallible_a certainty_n for_o so_o many_o stand_v oblige_v still_o to_o the_o former_a belief_n 2_o such_o exception_n can_v rational_o be_v make_v use_n of_o by_o none_o in_o the_o matter_n we_o speak_v of_o for_o who_o can_v presume_v himself_o thus_o certain_a in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n of_o scripture_n though_o the_o literal_a expression_n be_v never_o so_o clear_a where_o so_o many_o learned_a and_o his_o superior_n compare_v other_o text_n etc._n etc._n understand_v it_o otherwise_o and_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o as_o if_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o sense_n a_o dim-sighted_a person_n shall_v profess_v himself_o certain_a that_o a_o object_n be_v white_a when_o a_o multitude_n of_o other_o the_o most_o clear-sighted_a that_o can_v be_v find_v have_v all_o the_o same_o mean_n with_o he_o of_o a_o right_a sensation_n pronounce_v it_o black_a or_o of_o another_o colour_n §_o 16_o now_o this_o case_n only_o except_v i_o say_v such_o guide_n ought_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o i_o in_o all_o it_o propose_v and_o this_o upon_o a_o triple_a account_n 1_o because_o otherwise_o i_o expose_v myself_o to_o error_n in_o something_o necessary_a to_o which_o error_n in_o not_o follow_v this_o guide_n i_o be_o very_o liable_a for_o though_o i_o have_v beside_o this_o guide_n a_o rule_n infallible_a yet_o my_o sense_n thereof_o be_v not_o so_o in_o point_n that_o be_v controvert_v 2_o because_o this_o be_v such_o a_o guide_n as_o learned_a protestant_n grant_v that_o god_n command_n do_v oblige_v i_o to_o obey_v its_o judgement_n where_o i_o have_v no_o certain_a evidence_n of_o the_o contrary_a of_o its_o decree_n 20._o decree_n see_v below_o §._o 20._o and_o also_o common_a reason_n oblige_v i_o to_o follow_v a_o better_a judgement_n than_o my_o own_o especial_o when_o i_o do_v it_o as_o with_o due_a humility_n so_o with_o sufficient_a safety_n because_o thus_o it_o must_v be_v only_o a_o non-necessary_a that_o i_o can_v err_v in_o and_o as_o i_o be_o certain_a if_o a_o fundamental_a that_o it_o be_v true_a what_o it_o deliver_v so_o not_o certain_a if_o it_o be_v no_o fundamental_a that_o then_o it_o be_v not_o true_a 3_o because_o though_o something_o superfluous_a may_v possible_o be_v determine_v by_o this_o guide_n yet_o consider_v the_o former_a notion_n of_o necessary_n 9_o necessary_n §._o 9_o to_o which_o there_o seem_v good_a cause_n that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o this_o guide_n be_v extend_v who_o will_v undertake_v to_o exclude_v any_o particular_a church
extare_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la quatenus_fw-la omnino_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la est_fw-la necessarium_fw-la cognosci_fw-la indubitatò_fw-la possit_fw-la at_o nihil_fw-la tale_n extare_fw-la praeter_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la dicas_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la esse_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la cognitio_fw-la semper_fw-la peti_fw-la possit_fw-la primum_fw-la statuendum_fw-la tibi_fw-la erit_fw-la deum_fw-la etiam_fw-la decrevisse_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la falsa_fw-la enim_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la rem_fw-la inepta_fw-la est_fw-la semper_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la mundi_fw-la finem_fw-la extet_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la extet_fw-la à_fw-la quâ_fw-la omnes_fw-la salutaris_fw-la u●rit●tis_fw-la notitiam_fw-la indubitatè_fw-la pevere_a queant_fw-la requiritur_fw-la ut_fw-la homines_fw-la complures_fw-la coetum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o omnium_fw-la ●oulos_fw-la incurrat_fw-la constituant_fw-la at_o non_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la quis_fw-la certam_fw-la aliquam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la hoc_fw-la privilegio_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la donatam_fw-la esse_fw-la contendat_fw-la ut_fw-la fide_fw-la excidere_fw-la nequeat_fw-la deinde_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la veram_fw-la certo_fw-la cognosci_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la cognoscatur_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la salutaris_fw-la christi_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praeterea_fw-la indipsum_fw-la saltem_fw-la debuisse_fw-la alicubi_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la clarè_v ac_fw-la perspicuè_fw-fr scriptum_fw-la exta●e_fw-la debere_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la peti_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la scitu_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessaria_fw-la &_o quaenam_fw-la ea_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ac_fw-la unde_fw-la debeat_fw-la cognosci_fw-la clare_v describi_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o câ_fw-la cognoscenda_fw-la facile_fw-la errare_fw-la posset_n nam_fw-la si_fw-la quippiam_fw-la scriptu_fw-la fuisset_fw-la necessarium_fw-la hoc_fw-la sane_fw-la fuisset_fw-la sine_fw-la quo_fw-la reliqua_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la cripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la aut_fw-la parum_fw-la admodum_fw-la prodessent_fw-la denique_fw-la eam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quam_fw-la isti_fw-la pontificii_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la extitisse_fw-la volunt_fw-la constare_fw-la multis_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la atque_fw-la adeo_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quoqu●_n qu●_n ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessariae_fw-la gravissime_fw-la errare_fw-la thing_n usual_o plead_v by_o mr._n chillingw_o and_o his_o follower_n but_o whether_o borrow_a from_o these_o i_o can_v say_v nothing_o n._n nothing_o see_v below_o §_o 47._o n._n thus_o the_o socinian_o lie_v the_o platform_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o when_o the_o protestant_n for_o confute_v their_o error_n urge_v father_n and_o church-authority_n against_o they_o they_o reply_v that_o they_o have_v learn_v this_o from_o they_o to_o receive_v nothing_o beside_o scripture_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o father_n prafat_n father_n see_v simlerus_n de_fw-fr filio_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o s._n spiritu_fw-la prafat_n meanwhile_o appeal_n of_o the_o father_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o acknowledge_v frequent_a and_o that_o also_o sometime_o wave_v church-authority_n 14._o church-authority_n see_v s._n austin_n contra_fw-la maximinum_n l._n 3._o c._n 14._o but_o never_o make_v in_o opposition_n to_o it_o former_a or_o present_a their_o great_a humility_n which_o also_o keep_v they_o orthodox_n hinder_v they_o from_o presume_v this_o and_o have_v any_o of_o they_o do_v it_o posterity_n will_v not_o have_v style_v he_o a_o father_n the_o second_o thing_n be_v 2._o §._o 40._o n._n 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n or_o entireness_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2_o 2_o for_o the_o contain_v all_o those_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v simple_o necessary_a of_o all_o person_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o attain_v salvation_n roman_a catholic_n deny_v it_o not_o but_o only_o deny_v such_o a_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o some_o of_o those_o as_o christian_n can_v mistake_v or_o pervert_v catholic_n contend_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o christian_n according_a as_o the_o church_n out_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n have_v or_o shall_v declare_v and_o propose_v they_o as_o touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n several_a function_n of_o the_o clergy_n administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o some_o other_o sacred_a ceremony_n and_o particular_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o as_o to_o the_o clear_a mention_n therein_o of_o all_o those_o appertinent_o which_o yet_o have_v be_v ever_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o touch_v the_o obligation_n of_o believe_v and_o due_a observe_v of_o several_a of_o these_o tradition_n as_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n learned_a protestant_n also_o agree_v with_o they_o 9_o they_o see_v dr._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o dr._n tailor_n episcopacy_n assert_v §_o 19_o reason_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o covenant_n 1647._o p._n 9_o and_o in_o particular_a concern_v the_o believe_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n though_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n see_v mr._n chillingworths_n concession_n p._n 55._o 114_o 55._o see_v also_o p._n 114_o where_o he_o say_v that_o when_o protestant_n affirm_v against_o papist_n that_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n their_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o by_o scripture_n all_o thing_n absolute_o may_v be_v prove_v which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n to_o a_o gain-say_a that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o that_o the_o book_n call_v scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o that_o will_v deny_v these_o assertion_n when_o they_o be_v speak_v will_v believe_v they_o never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o because_o you_o can_v show_v they_o write_v but_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n to_o they_o that_o presuppose_v it_o divine_a and_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o papist_n and_o protestant_n do_v contain_v all_o the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o complete_a and_o total_a and_o not_o only_o a_o imperfect_a and_o a_o partial_a rule_n where_o in_o say_v all_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n he_o mean_v only_o all_o other_o after_o these_o he_o name_v presuppose_v and_o pre-believed_n but_o though_o i_o say_v catholic_n maintain_v several_a credend_n that_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o observe_v by_o christian_n after_o the_o church_n proposal_n of_o they_o as_o tradition_n apostolical_a among_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n yet_o they_o willing_o concede_fw-la that_o all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v simple_o necessary_a for_o attain_v salvation_n and_o as_o ought_v explicit_o by_o all_o man_n to_o be_v know_v in_o order_n thereto_o either_o ra●ione_fw-la medii_fw-la or_o pracepti_fw-la as_o the_o doctrine_n collect_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o common_a precept_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o the_o more_o necessary_a sacrament_n etc._n etc._n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n contain_v therein_o either_o in_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o or_o in_o the_o principle_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v errores_fw-la deduce_v bellarmin_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la lib_n 4._o cap._n 11._o illa_fw-la omne_fw-la scippta_fw-la sunt_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnibus_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la necessaria_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la stapleton_n relect_a princip_n doctrinae_fw-la fidei_fw-la controver_n 5._o q._n 5._o art_n 1_o doctrinam_fw-la fidei_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o fingulis_fw-la explicitè_fw-fr credendam_fw-la omnem_fw-la aut_fw-la ferè_fw-la omnem_fw-la scripto_fw-la commendarunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la the_o main_a and_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n say_v f._n fisher_n in_o bishop_n white_a pag_n 12._o be_v believe_v to_o be_v apostolical_a because_o they_o be_v write_v in_o cripture_n s._n thom_n 22._o q._n 1._o art_n 9_o primus_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la primum_fw-la art_n 10._o ad_fw-la primum_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o apostolorum_fw-la he_o mean_v c●p●a_fw-la weritas_fw-la fidei_fw-la est_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la explicata_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la pervesi_fw-la homines_fw-la scripturas_fw-la pe●vertunt_fw-la ideo_fw-la necessaria_fw-la fuit_fw-la temporibus_fw-la proce●encibus_fw-la explicatio_fw-la fides_fw-la contra_fw-la insurgentes_fw-la errores_fw-la therefore_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n define_v any_o thing_n concern_v such_o point_n define_v it_o out_o of_o the_o revelation_n make_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o chief_a tradition_n the_o necessity_n and_o benefit_n of_o which_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o deliver_n of_o any_o additional_a doctrine_n descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n extra_fw-la scripturas_fw-la i._n e._n such_o as_o have_v not_o their_o foundation_n at_o least_o in_o scripture_n but_o be_v the_o preserve_n and_o deliver_v of_o the_o primitive_a sense_n and_o church-explication_n of_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o many_o time_n not_o there_o write_v so_o clear_o which_o traditive_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n you_o may_v find_v make_v use_n of_o against_o arianism_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a 8._o nice_a see_v theod._n hist_o l._n 1_o c._n 8._o or_o
as_o dr._n field_n it_o be_v that_o form_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o explication_n of_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o 375._o thereof_o of_o the_o ch._n p._n 375._o which_o the_o first_o christian_n receive_v of_o the_o same_o apostle_n that_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n commend_v to_o posterity_n thus_o he_o this_o then_o be_v the_o tradition_n that_o be_v chief_o vindicate_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v not_o the_o deficiency_n of_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o the_o main_a and_o prime_a and_o universal_o necessary-to-be-known_a article_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o necessity_n that_o these_o be_v supply_v and_o complete_v with_o other_o not_o write_v traditional_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o catholic_n do_v question_n but_o the_o non-clearness_n of_o scripture_n for_o several_a of_o these_o point_n such_o as_o that_o they_o may_v be_v miss-understood_a which_o non-c●earness_a of_o they_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o make_v use_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n for_o a_o true_a exposition_n and_o sense_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o assert_v and_o wonder_v that_o after_o the_o appearance_n of_o so_o many_o grievous_a heresy_n and_o shall_v deny_v for_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n contain_v all_o the_o chief_a and_o material_a point_n of_o a_o christian_n belief_n what_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o except_o that_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n also_o grant_n can_v be_v learn_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o except_v those_o practical_o wherein_o the_o church_n only_o require_v a_o belief_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o they_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o they_o can_v be_v show_v to_o be_v against_o scripture_n i_o say_v what_o speculative_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o for_o which_o catholic_n rest_v mere_o on_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o do_v not_o for_o it_o allege_v scripture_n i_o mean_v even_o that_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n allow_v a_o thing_n observe_v also_o by_o dr._n field_n 20._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o but_o too_o much_o extend_v this_o be_v so_o clear_a say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v grant_v no_o principal_a point_n thereof_o deliver_v by_o bare_a and_o only_a tradition_n that_o therein_o the_o romanist_n contrary_a themselves_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o same_o thing_n they_o pretend_v to_o hold_v by_o tradition_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v if_o we_o run_v through_o the_o thing_n question_v between_o they_o and_o we_o they_o contrary_v not_o themselves_o in_o their_o hold_v several_a thing_n to_o be_v deliver_v clear_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v also_o but_o obscure_o or_o more_o evadable_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n again_o 377._o again_o ib._n p._n 377._o so_o that_o for_o matter_n of_o faith_n say_v he_o we_o may_v conclude_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o learned_a of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o either_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o thence_o and_o by_o other_o thing_n evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n or_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v conclude_v thus_o he_o i_o say_v then_o not_o this_o whether_o the_o main_a or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o to_o all_o point_n necessary_a by_o all_o to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v be_v contain_v there_o but_o this_o whether_o so_o clear_o that_o the_o unlearned_a use_v a_o right_a diligence_n can_v therein_o mistake_v or_o do_v not_o need_v therein_o another_o guide_n be_v the_o thing_n here_o contest_v §_o 41_o for_o a_o particular_a reply_n then_o to_o what_o be_v here_o say_v to_o α_n one_a i_o ask_v if_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_o reveal_v α_n r._n to_o α_n and_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n clear_o decide_v in_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a how_o have_v controversy_n in_o necessary_n as_o concern_v the_o trinity_n our_o lord_n deity_n and_o humanity_n etc._n etc._n in_o several_a age_n arise_v and_o gain_v many_o follower_n here_o will_v they_o say_v that_o such_o controversy_n be_v not_o in_o necessary_n how_o then_o come_v the_o first_o general_n council_n extol_v by_o protestant_n to_o put_v they_o in_o the_o creed_n or_o to_o exact_a assent_n to_o they_o upon_o anathema_n which_o council_n they_o affirm_v in_o non-necessaries_a fallible_a and_o in_o what_o they_o be_v fallible_a unjust_o impose_v assent_n or_o will_v they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v in_o necessary_n and_o that_o the_o unlearned_a may_v easy_o discern_v and_o decide_v they_o and_o that_o not_o by_o tradition_n but_o only_a scripture_n how_o happen_v it_o then_o that_o heretofore_o so_o many_o learned_a unlearned_a when_o forsake_v the_o church_n guidance_n err_v in_o they_o but_o if_o they_o say_v this_o happen_v for_o want_n of_o a_o due_a diligence_n in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o scripture_n thus_o they_o leave_v man_n in_o great_a perplexity_n when_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o only_o obscure_a to_o they_o through_o their_o negligent_a search_n and_o so_o when_o the_o point_n perhaps_o may_v be_v necessary_a thus_o a_o illiterate_a christian_n not_o discern_v from_o clear_a scripture_n whether_o sociniansme_n or_o antisocinianisme_a be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o he_o be_v very_o solicitous_a to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o and_o consult_v they_o concern_v it_o they_o tell_v he_o there_o be_v no_o other_o director_n leave_v he_o beside_o scripture_n who_o judgement_n he_o may_v secure_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n or_o council_n here_o be_v wave_v by_o they_o because_o this_o judgement_n allow_v or_o authorize_v will_v infer_v the_o belief_n of_o some_o other_o point_n which_o they_o approve_v not_o only_a this_o satisfaction_n they_o seem_v to_o leave_v he_o that_o if_o neither_o side_n be_v clear_a to_o he_o in_o scripture_n neither_o much_o matter_n it_o which_o side_n he_o hold_v for_o truth_n for_o god_n say_v they_o have_v there_o clear_o reveal_v all_o necessary_n but_o he_o inquire_v further_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o firm_o believe_v anti-socinianism_a and_o also_o ground_n their_o faith_n of_o this_o upon_o the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o it_o and_o then_o it_o appear_v to_o they_o clear_a in_o scripture_n how_o they_o know_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o necessary_a truth_n and_o so_o his_o salvation_n ruin_v if_o he_o believe_v the_o contrary_a here_o what_o they_o can_v answer_v that_o will_v not_o more_o perplex_v he_o i_o see_v not_o since_o so_o long_a as_o he_o may_v possible_o fail_v in_o a_o due_a diligence_n though_o only_o require_v according_a to_o his_o condition_n he_o can_v be_v satisfy_v whether_o the_o point_n to_o every_o due_a searcher_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o scripture_n and_o also_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a nor_o yet_o will_v they_o allow_v he_o any_o other_o certain_a director_n in_o it_o but_o the_o same_o scripture_n which_o appear_v to_o he_o ambiguous_a hear_v what_o mr._n stillingfleet_n interpose_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o seem_v reasonable_a say_v he_o 58._o he_o ration_n account_n p._n 58._o that_o because_o art_n and_o subtlety_n may_v be_v use_v by_o such_o who_o seek_v to_o pervert_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o to_o wrest_v the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o deliver_v it_o so_o far_o from_o their_o proper_a meaning_n that_o very_o few_o ordinary_a capacity_n may_v be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o to_o such_o mist_n as_o be_v cast_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o succeed_a age_n may_v be_v a_o very_a useful_a way_n but_o why_o not_o a_o necessary_a way_n i_o pray_v upon_o the_o former_a supposa_fw-mi for_o we_o to_o embrace_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n especial_o in_o the_o great_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o for_o instance_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o trinity_n therefore_o you_o see_v in_o the_o great_a article_n scripture_n confess_v not_o so_o plain_a especial_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o ordinary_a capacity_n §_o 42_o 2_o lie_n if_o all_o necessary_n so_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n may_v we_o not_o so_o much_o the_o more_o secure_o and_o certain_o rely_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a guide_n and_o teacher_n in_o they_o to_o who_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v as_o or_o more_o plain_a than_o to_o we_o especial_o on_o their_o judgement_n when_o assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n on_o it_o for_o these_o necessary_n at_o least_o it_o seem_v no_o and_o that_o the_o case_n be_v now_o alter_v even_o now_o necessary_n be_v so_o plain_a in_o scripture_n as_o the_o unlearned_a use_v ordinary_a diligence_n can_v not_o mistake_v in_o they_o now_o necessary_n be_v
not_o so_o plain_a in_o scripture_n but_o that_o a_o general_n council_n as_o to_o the_o major_a part_n of_o they_o the_o high_a authority_n by_o which_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v direct_v we_o at_o least_o if_o not_o in_o their_o sense_n universal_o accept_v for_o this_o exception_n be_v put_v in_o by_o the_o more_o moderate_a etc._n moderate_a see_v disc_n 1._o §._o 32._o etc._n etc._n may_v mistake_v in_o they_o so_o far_o as_o that_o the_o unlearned_a have_v even_o for_o these_o necessary_n no_o security_n to_o rely_v on_o their_o judgement_n i_o must_v tell_v you_o say_v mr._n chillingworth_n to_o f._n knot_n 150._o knot_n p._n 150._o you_o be_v too_o bold_a in_o take_v that_o which_o no_o man_n grant_v you_o that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a director_n in_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n now_o this_o also_o he_o be_v consider_v his_o engagement_n force_v to_o say_v and_o give_v the_o reason_n that_o make_v he_o say_v so_o i_o suppose_v for_o satisfy_v his_o own_o party_n rather_o than_o his_o adversary_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v for_n say_v he_o if_o she_o be_v so_o then_o must_v we_o not_o only_o learn_v fundamental_o of_o she_o but_o also_o learn_v of_o she_o what_o be_v fundamental_a and_o take_v all_o for_o fundamental_a which_o she_o deliver_v to_o be_v such_o and_o what_o harm_n in_o it_o say_v i_o if_o you_o do_v but_o this_o he_o well_o see_v will_v have_v destroy_v the_o reformation_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o public_a director_n that_o be_v then_o in_o be_v deliver_v but._n if_o these_o necessary_n at_o the_o last_o be_v not_o so_o few_o or_o so_o plain_a in_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church-guide_n even_o when_o meet_v in_o their_o supreme_a consult_v may_v err_v in_o they_o will_v he_o allow_v we_o then_o to_o follow_v some_o other_o judgement_n that_o be_v in_o these_o point_v fallible_a if_o so_o why_o not_o to_o follow_v they_o still_o but_o if_o not_o so_o who_o judgement_n will_v he_o direct_v we_o to_o that_o shall_v less_o err_v than_o these_o guide_n or_o that_o shall_v certain_o not_o err_v in_o the_o undrstanding_n of_o these_o plain_a scripture_n wherein_o these_o guide_n mistake_v methinks_v he_o shall_v *_o forbear_v here_o to_o name_n to_o we_o our_o own_o judgement_n even_o when_o we_o unlearned_a too_o and_o yet_o none_o else_o can_v he_o name_v and_o *_o much_o more_o forbear_v here_o to_o allege_v passion_n faction_n interest_n &c_n &c_n as_o great_a blinder_n of_o this_o public_a judgement_n unless_o he_o can_v first_o show_v the_o private_a not_o at_o all_o or_o less_o liable_a to_o they_o which_o corrupter_n of_o a_o clear_a understanding_n seem_v indeed_o more_o incident_a to_o person_n of_o a_o low_a rank_n and_o that_o have_v much_o relation_n to_o and_o dependence_n on_o other_o and_o therefore_o what_o more_o common_a than_o for_o avoid_v those_o to_o make_v appeal_n from_o inferior_a to_o a_o more_o general_a judgement_n as_o expect_v in_o the_o most_o general_a the_o most_o impartial_a deal_n and_o what_o private_a person_n can_v we_o produce_v that_fw-mi do_v not_o range_v himself_o with_o some_o party_n and_o that_o have_v not_o in_o matter_n controvert_v a_o strong_a secular_a interest_n for_o one_o side_n to_o be_v truth_n rather_o than_o the_o other_o according_a to_o the_o church_n and_o state_n he_o live_v in_o §_o 43_o but_o 3_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n some_o way_n or_o other_o do_v clear_o reveal_v to_o all_o even_o the_o unlearned_a use_v their_o due_a industry_n that_o which_o he_o require_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o so_o it_o be_v not_o consequent_a at_o all_o that_o god_n shall_v do_v this_o as_o to_o every_o thing_n necessary_a in_o the_o scripture_n first_o because_o god_n can_v be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v deficient_a in_o a_o competent_a revelation_n of_o necessary_n to_o all_o man_n if_o he_o have_v leave_v as_o indeed_o he_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n and_o clearness_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v first_o general_o agree_v on_o to_o be_v his_o word_n to_o every_o man_n right_o use_v his_o private_a judgement_n or_o common_a reason_n as_o to_o one_o point_n only_o viz._n this_o that_o it_o be_v his_o divine_a will_n that_o private_a man_n for_o all_o those_o scripture_n the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v any_o way_n dubicus_n or_o controvert_v shall_v constant_o be_v guide_v by_o and_o adhere_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o spiritual_a superior_n that_o he_o have_v set_v over_o they_o and_o in_o any_o division_n of_o these_o shall_v still_o hold_v to_o the_o superior_n among_o these_o superior_n according_a to_o the_o subordination_n by_o he_o establish_v among_o they_o for_o thus_o we_o see_v after_o a_o christian_n private_a judgement_n or_o common_a reason_n use_v only_o in_o one_o point_n for_o all_o other_o point_v private_a judgement_n be_v now_o discharge_v and_o in_o stead_n thereof_o obedience_n to_o authority_n take_v place_n so_o far_o as_o its_o state_v of_o any_o point_n think_v fit_a to_o restrain_v therein_o other_o man_n liberty_n of_o opinion_n the_o testimony_n of_o which_o church-authority_n as_o a_o thing_n clear_o demonstrate_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o scripture_n s._n austin_n in_o more_o difficult_a matter_n of_o controversy_n often_o appeal_v to_o see_v disc_n 3._o §_o 82._o n._n 4._o puto_fw-la say_v he_o si_fw-la aliquis_fw-la sapiens_fw-la extitisset_fw-la cvi_fw-la dominus_fw-la jesus_n christus_fw-la testimonium_fw-la perhibet_fw-la that_o we_o shall_v be_v direct_v by_o his_o judgement_n &_o de_fw-la hac_fw-la quaestione_fw-la consuleretur_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la nullo_n modo_fw-la dubitare_fw-la deberemus_fw-la id_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la dixisset_fw-la ne_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la ipsi_fw-la quam_fw-la domino_fw-la jesus_n christo_fw-la cujus_fw-la testimonio_fw-la commendatur_fw-la repugnare_fw-la judicaremur_fw-la perhibet_fw-la autem_fw-la testimonium_fw-la christus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la suae_fw-la and_o by_o this_o which_o be_v so_o often_o retort_v by_o protestant_n that_o catholic_n also_o be_v force_v to_o allow_v to_o christian_n the_o necessary_a use_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n will_v be_v verify_v only_o in_o this_o one_o point_n the_o choice_n or_o the_o discern_a of_o their_o guide_n whereas_o the_o protestant_n make_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o point_n and_o who_o see_v not_o a_o vast_a difference_n between_o these_o two_o for_o the_o hazard_n which_o a_o christian_a incur_v therein_o 1_o the_o be_v in_o all_o controvert_v matter_n of_o religion_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n mere_o cast_v upon_o his_o own_o reason_n and_o skill_n to_o steer_v himself_o aright_o therein_o and_o 2_o the_o be_v leave_v to_o it_o only_o in_o one_o matter_n and_o that_o one_o as_o catholic_n contend_v in_o the_o scripture_n very_o clear_a after_o which_o examine_v and_o judge_v by_o he_o all_o the_o rest_n wherein_o he_o may_v want_v a_o resolution_n be_v without_o his_o further_a solicitude_n to_o be_v judge_v for_o he_o by_o another_o so_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n when_o a_o person_n fall_v sick_a between_o his_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o use_n of_o his_o private_a judgement_n in_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o physician_n according_a to_o certain_a rule_n prescribe_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o wise_a and_o experience_a man_n in_o that_o behalf_n and_o then_o this_o once_o do_v submit_v himself_o afterward_o to_o this_o physician_n in_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v prescribe_v for_o his_o cure_n and_o between_o this_o sick_a person_n undertake_n by_o hypocrates_n his_o aphorism_n or_o other_o physic_n book_n to_o prescribe_v all_o particular_a remedy_n to_o himself_o upon_o this_o reason_n that_o if_o his_o private_a judgement_n serve_v for_o direct_v in_o the_o one_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o physician_n why_o not_o in_o all_o the_o other_o fit_a medicine_n for_o his_o disease_n which_o argument_n be_v only_o good_a where_o all_o the_o object_n about_o which_o our_o judgement_n be_v exercise_v be_v equal_o easy_a and_o clear_a to_o it_o and_o therefore_o unconsequent_o seem_v that_o question_n to_o be_v ask_v 7._o ask_v stillingf_n r._n ac._n p._n 7._o if_o the_o scripture_n may_v and_o must_v decide_v one_o point_n that_o of_o the_o church_n why_o may_v it_o not_o as_o well_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o in_o all_o other_o point_v equal_o clear_a and_o not-mistakable_a this_o then_o be_v one_o way_n of_o sufficient_a revelation_n beside_o mr_n chillingworth_n way_n i_o mean_v that_o of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n be_v clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n viz._n a_o sufficient_a revelation_n of_o one_o point_n in_o scripture_n concern_v that_o guide_n from_o who_o we_o may_v secure_o learn_v all_o the_o other_o point_n not_o clear_a to_o we_o in_o scripture_n §_o 44_o 2_o lie_n because_o god_n beside_o and_o before_o the_o new-testament_n scripture_n leave_v
these_o doctrine_n sufficient_o reveal_v to_o the_o then-appointed_n ecclesiastical_a guide_n from_o who_o both_o the_o present_a people_n and_o the_o future_a successor_n of_o these_o guide_n both_o be_v and_o may_v rational_o know_v they_o be_v to_o learn_v they_o and_o so_o have_v there_o be_v no_o scripture_n may_v by_o mere_a tradition_n have_v learn_v they_o sufficient_o to_o this_o day_n for_o their_o salvation_n this_o be_v a_o second_o way_n then_o of_o sufficient_a revelation_n beside_o or_o without_o that_o in_o scripture_n viz._n all_o necessary_a truth_n since_o the_o pen_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o so_o manifest_v clear_o to_o and_o so_o deliver_v clear_o by_o the_o church-guide_n as_o they_o be_v manifest_v to_o they_o before_o scripture_n 3_o because_o as_o all_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n may_v before_o so_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n may_v after_o the_o writing_n allo_fw-la of_o the_o new-testament-scripture_n have_v be_v clear_o enough_o deliver_v by_o tradition_n and_o by_o the_o first_o scripture-expositor_n to_o the_o christian_a people_n that_o be_v then_o and_o so_o to_o posterity_n though_o meanwhile_n the_o letter_n of_o such_o scripture_n do_v not_o so_o necessary_o enforce_v this_o traditive_a sense_n as_o not_o to_o be_v possible_o or_o sometime_o probable_o capable_a of_o another_o this_o be_v a_o three_o way_n of_o sufficient_a revelation_n viz._n by_o the_o clear_a descend_a tradition_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o scripture_n which_o be_v in_o their_o letter_n ambiguous_a §_o 45_o but_o 4_o lie_v suppose_v it_o needful_a that_o all_o such_o necessary_n must_v be_v clear_o reveal_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n yet_o be_v this_o sufficient_a to_o save_v god_n proceed_n from_o tyranny_n if_o that_o they_o be_v with_o sufficient_a clearness_n reveal_v therein_o to_o the_o church_n guide_v alone_o and_o to_o the_o learned_a that_o diligent_o read_v and_o compare_v the_o scripture_n together_o and_o use_v the_o help_n of_o the_o comparing_n and_o comment_n of_o other_o and_o if_o that_o the_o illiterate_a people_n be_v remit_v by_o god_n in_o all_o age_n to_o learn_v these_o necessary_n from_o their_o guide_n this_o be_v a_o four_o way_n of_o sufficient_a revelation_n of_o necessary_n i._n e._n a_o revelation_n of_o they_o in_o scripture_n such_o as_o must_v be_v clear_a to_o the_o church-guide_n in_o stead_n of_o that_o other_o revelation_n there_o of_o mr._n chillingworth_n such_o as_o must_v be_v clear_a to_o all_o to_o i_o answer_v 1._o §._o 46._o n._n 1._o that_o where_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v ambiguous_a β._n r._n to_o β._n and_o in_o controversy_n which_o sense_n and_o not_o the_o letter_n only_o be_v god_n word_n here_o their_o guide_n to_o know_v this_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v this_o by_o all_o allow_v infallible_a scripture_n which_o protestant_n pretend_v but_o must_v be_v either_o the_o church_n judgement_n which_o they_o say_v be_v fallible_a or_o their_o own_o which_o all_o reasonable_a man_n i_o shall_v think_v will_v say_v be_v more_o fallible_a to_o γ._o see_v many_o of_o their_o question_n solve_v γ._n r._n to_o γ._n disc_n 3._o §_o 86._o and_o concern_v our_o understanding_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n better_a than_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n see_v below_o §_o 48._o etc._n etc._n to_o δ._o one_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a δ._n §._o 46._o n._n 2._o r._n to_o δ._n that_o god_n shall_v direct_v christian_n in_o this_o matter_n by_o the_o scripture_n since_o they_o be_v sufficient_o direct_v herein_o also_o before_o the_o scripture_n i_o mean_v before_o the_o write_n of_o those_o of_o the_o new-testament_n and_o since_o they_o may_v be_v sufficient_o assure_v from_o those_o who_o be_v send_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o teach_v they_o christianity_n in_o this_o point_n also_o that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o teach_v they_o but_o 2_o it_o be_v maintain_v that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v do_v this_o 3._o §._o 46._o n._n 3._o and_z *_o have_v tell_v we_o etc._n we_o eph._n 4.11_o etc._n etc._n that_o he_o have_v set_v these_o guide_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o edify_a and_o perfect_v thereof_o and_o for_o this_o in_o particular_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n with_o which_o wind_n of_o contrary_a doctrine_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n as_o experience_n show_v from_o age_n to_o age_n will_v have_v be_v grievous_o shake_v and_o dissipate_v but_o that_o these_o governor_n from_o time_n to_o time_n by_o state_v her_o doctrine_n have_v preserve_v her_o child_n from_o it_o and_o *_o have_v tell_v we_o again_o 3.16_o again_o 2_o pet._n 3.16_o that_o the_o unlearned_a wrest_v some_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v plain_a it_o seem_v to_o the_o learned_a in_o that_o these_o wrester_n be_v the_o unlearned_a to_o their_o own_o damnation_n therefore_o these_o be_v such_o scripture_n also_o as_o speak_v concern_v necessary_n and_o *_o have_v therefore_o give_v we_o a_o charge_n to_o obey_v these_o guide_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o care_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o follow_v their_o faith_n 17._o faith_n heb._n 13.7_o 17._o *_o and_o declare_v that_o he_o that_o hear_v they_o hear_v he_o 10._o he_o luke_n 10._o add_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n especicial_o when_o gaeher_v together_o 20._o together_o mat._n 18.17_o 20._o and_o will_v have_v the_o refractory_a to_o they_o excommunicate_v 18.17_o excommunicate_v mat._n 18.17_o and_o according_o to_o this_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o it_o in_o primitive_a tradition_n the_o church-guide_n from_o age_n to_o age_n have_v meet_v together_o settle_v the_o churchche_n doctrine_n exact_v conformity_n excommunicate_v dissenter_n &c_n &c_n next_o to_o ε._n where_o they_o say_v that_o god_n foresee_v 1._o §._o 47._o n._n 1._o that_o division_n will_v happen_v among_o these_o guide_n ε._n r._n to_o ε._n will_v have_v tell_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o in_o such_o case_n among_o the_o several_a party_n of_o they_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o follow_v and_o adhere_v to_o as_o that_o we_o shall_v adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o most_o general_a council_n and_o in_o dissent_v vote_n to_o the_o major_a part_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n to_o which_o purpose_n be_v those_o word_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n 61._o chillingworth_n p._n 61._o if_o our_o saviour_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n have_v intend_v that_o all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n shall_v be_v by_o some_o visible_a judge_n final_o determine_v who_o can_v doubt_v but_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o will_v have_v express_v himself_o about_o this_o matter_n he_o will_v have_v say_v plain_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v appoint_v to_o decide_v all_o emergent_a controversy_n for_o that_o our_o saviour_n design_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o add_v or_o a_o general_n counci_n to_o this_o office_n and_o yet_o will_v not_o say_v so_o nor_o cause_n it_o to_o be_v write_v ad_fw-la rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la by_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n so_o much_o as_o once_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o be_v draw_v out_o of_o uncertain_a principle_n by_o 13_o or_o 14._o more_o uncertain_a consequence_n he_o that_o can_v believe_v it_o let_v he_o and_o p._n 104._o he_o say_v it_o will_v have_v be_v infinite_o beneficial_a to_o the_o church_n perhaps_o as_o much_o as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bible_n that_o in_o some_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v to_o be_v undoubted_o receive_v this_o one_o proposition_n have_v be_v set_v down_o in_o term_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o their_o adherent_n shall_v always_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o p._n 171._o he_o argue_v thus_o seeing_z god_n do_v nothing_o in_o vain_a and_o see_v it_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o appoint_v a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o not_o to_o tell_v we_o so_o plain_o who_o it_o be_v and_o see_v last_o he_o have_v not_o tell_v we_o plain_o no_o not_o at_o all_o who_o it_o be_v be_v it_o not_o evident_a he_o have_v appoint_v none_o see_v the_o same_o thing_n urge_v by_o mr._n stillingfleet_n rat._n account_v p._n 465._o and_o see_v all_o this_o as_o it_o be_v translate_v only_o out_o of_o the_o socinian_n book_n before_o §_o 40._o n._n 1._o to_o this_o one_a i_o answer_v 2._o §._o 47._o n._n 2._o that_o negative_a argn_v from_o scripture_n 1._o 1._o such_o as_o this_o a_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a concernment_n to_o all_o christian_n if_o it_o be_v true_a will_v have_v be_v clear_o express_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v not_o find_v clear_o express_v rherein_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o true_a as_o
again_o he_o use_v the_o ordinary_a care_n of_o person_n desire_v instruction_n can_v but_o come_v to_o know_v its_o council_n and_o their_o definition_n its_o doctrine_n and_o law_n which_o we_o find_v as_o the_o leader_n of_o all_o sect_n do_v they_o so_o those_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v studious_a to_o divulge_v and_o publish_v so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v by_o he_o consider_v his_o condition_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o the_o profession_n or_o practice_n thereof_o require_v of_o he_o for_o example_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o be_v there_o use_v the_o ordinary_a care_n necessary_a in_o matter_n of_o his_o salvation_n that_o first_o can_v easy_o discern_v this_o church_n from_o the_o several_a other_o late_a and_o unheaded_a sect_n that_o be_v in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o this_o church_n know_v who_o may_v not_o easy_o attain_v therein_o to_o a_o knowledge_n also_o of_o its_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o canon_n its_o synod_n or_o convocation_n deliver_v by_o the_o common_a tradition_n and_o by_o the_o church-guide_n and_o public_a write_n daily_o inculcate_v so_o far_o as_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o be_v to_o he_o necessary_a the_o same_o evidence_n therefore_o in_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v allow_v not_o to_o be_v want_v to_o those_o who_o have_v once_o find_v among_o the_o many_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o church_n which_o be_v their_o right_a guide_n §_o 49_o and_o little_a reason_n have_v the_o reform_v to_o affirm_v a_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v make_v most_o evident_a even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a in_o the_o scripture_n if_o assert_v on_o this_o account_n because_o such_o people_n have_v no_o mean_n of_o attain_v any_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o with_o little_a reareason_n seem_v mr._n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o to_o affirm_v which_o yet_o be_v use_v by_o many_o late_a protestant-writer_n as_o a_o main_a ground_n of_o evacuate_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n *_o that_o it_o be_v no_o easy_a a_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o the_o church_n define_v than_o what_o scripture_n determine_v and_o that_o the_o same_o art_n that_o can_v evade_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n will_v equal_o elude_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n 21._o tillot_v rule_n of_o say_v p._n 21._o as_o if_o all_o writing_n be_v equal_o plain_a or_o equal_o obscure_a or_o if_o none_o free_a from_o therefore_o all_o equal_o liable_a to_o cavil_n again_o *_o that_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o willingness_n of_o all_o protestant_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o their_o unity_n as_o that_o of_o the_o readiness_n of_o all_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n will_v hold_v for_o their_o unity_n and_o this_o unity_n to_o be_v effect_v by_o the_o scripture_n he_o speak_v of_o as_o to_o those_o matter_n wherein_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n be_v controvert_v among_o christian_n for_o in_o such_o only_a it_o be_v that_o christian_n for_o their_o unity_n seek_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o they_o undertake_v to_o defend_v this_o that_o a_o live_a judge_n set_v up_o for_o the_o expound_v of_o the_o dubious_a place_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o sentence_n of_o which_o judge_n all_o be_v agree_v to_o assent_v yet_o be_v no_o more_o effective_a for_o end_v controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o unite_n party_n than_o the_o law_n themselves_o be_v without_o such_o judge_n mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n be_v 101._o be_v p_o 101._o your_o great_a argument_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o your_o party_n because_o whatever_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v good_a will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o our_o unity_n as_o you_o because_o all_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n which_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o side_n to_o be_v infallible_a if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v know_v what_o scripture_n determine_v but_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o what_o the_o church_n define_v it_o be_v easy_o answer_v that_o the_o event_n show_v it_o to_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o how_o many_o dispute_n be_v there_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n &_o c_o conclude_v thus_o so_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v set_v aside_o force_n and_o fraud_n which_o be_v excellent_a principle_n of_o christian_a unity_n we_o be_v upon_o as_o fair_a term_n of_o union_n as_o you_o be_v among_o yourselves_o where_o do_v he_o not_o say_v this_o in_o effect_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v and_o its_o authority_n grant_v infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v by_o its_o subject_n yet_o we_o can_v no_o more_o know_v what_o this_o church_n define_v suppose_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o england_n define_v concern_v transubstantiation_n st-invocation_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n than_o what_o scripture_n determine_v concern_v these_o point_n and_o that_o canon_n catechism_n etc._n etc._n authorize_v by_o a_o church_n can_v no_o further_o clear_v any_o point_n to_o we_o than_o scripture_n do_v former_o and_o that_o only_o the_o church_n be_v so_o unfortunate_a in_o her_o public_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o her_o exposition_n be_v no_o plain_o than_o the_o text_n and_o that_o only_a force_n or_o fraud_n unite_v her_o subject_n in_o their_o opinion_n and_o if_o so_o what_o fault_n have_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n make_v in_o its_o new_a definition_n if_o after_o these_o it_o seem_v 102._o seem_v stillingf_n p._n 102._o there_o be_v as_o much_o division_n and_o then_o liberty_n also_o of_o opinion_n as_o be_v before_o they_o why_o do_v they_o accuse_v its_o decree_n as_o plain_a enough_o but_o erroneous_a and_o not_o invalidate_v they_o rather_o as_o dubious_a and_o uncertain_a why_o dispute_v they_o not_o whether_o these_o we_o have_v now_o extant_a be_v its_o genuine_a act_n will_v it_o not_o be_v advantageous_a to_o the_o reform_a to_o show_v that_o this_o council_n make_v nothing_o against_o they_o in_o such_o unreasonable_a contest_v have_v mr._n chillingworth_n by_o invent_v many_o captious_a question_n to_o weaken_v church-authority_n engage_v his_o follower_n as_o if_o though_o catholic_n allow_v several_a thing_n in_o council_n obscure_o deliver_v some_o proceed_n in_o some_o thing_n unjust_a the_o legality_n of_o some_o council_n dispute_v &c_n &c_n yet_o there_o can_v not_o remain_v still_o enough_o clear_a and_o unquestionable_a both_o of_o council_n and_o their_o canon_n both_o *_o to_n establish_v the_o most_o illiterate_a subject_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o such_o as_o be_v think_v necessary_a faith_n who_o obligation_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v all_o thing_n define_v but_o all_o thing_n sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o to_o be_v so_o and_o *_o to_n overthrow_v the_o past_a reformation_n the_o three_o discourse_n chap._n i._n roman-catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o in_o these_o scripture_n agree_v on_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n in_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o necessary_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o the_o church-catholick_n be_v contra-distinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n §_o 4._o 4._o that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o this_o church_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 5._o §_o 1_o one_a both_o roman_a catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a certainty_n in_o the_o general_n tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n descend_v to_o the_o present_a age_n that_o the_o bible_n or_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o they_o be_v agree_v that_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v in_o these_o scripture_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n §_o 2_o in_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o credend_n or_o practical_n necessary_a for_o obtain_v salvation_n from_o which_o christian_n seem_v to_o be_v secure_v that_o in_o their_o approve_v §_o 3_o and_o conform_v to_o what_o be_v grant_v general_o to_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o church-catholick_n of_o any_o age_n whatsoever_o they_o shall_v incur_v no_o error_n or_o practice_n destructive_a of_o salvation_n whereas_o a_o hazard_n herein_o may_v be_v in_o their_o depart_n from_o the_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n or_o of_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o any_o age_n all_o or_o some_o of_o which_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n §_o 4_o 3_o
or_o teach_v none_o of_o these_o article_n so_o he_o do_v not_o teach_v or_o profess_v the_o contrary_a but_o spend_v his_o discourse_n on_o other_o subject_n see_v now_o whether_o there_o may_v not_o be_v some_o reason_n for_o that_o which_o be_v observe_v before_o §_o 84._o n._n 3._o concern_v the_o archbishop_n obs_n 2_o 2_o lie_n concern_v those_o other_o article_n of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v no_o new_a positive_a article_n of_o the_o protestant_a faith_n but_o only_a negation_n 2._o §._o 85._o n._n 2._o and_o refuration_n of_o new_a roman_a assertion_n and_o addition_n you_o may_v note_v concern_v they_o 1_o st_z in_o general_n that_o negative_n may_v be_v scripture-truth_n reveal_v therein_o matter_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v as_o bishop_n bramhall_n grant_v 227._o grant_v reply_v to_o chalced_a p._n 227._o when_o know_v to_o be_v reveal_v as_o any_o affirmative_a and_o positive_a article_n be_v and_o the_o most_o fundamental_a article_n may_v be_v as_o well_o negative_o as_o affirmative_o propose_v and_o see_v that_o the_o one_o necessary_o imply_v and_o infer_v the_o other_o as_o one_o be_v ratione_fw-la medii_fw-la necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o be_v the_o other_o so_o the_o negative_a article_n in_o the_o nicen_n or_o athanasian_n creed_n pater_fw-la non_fw-la creatus_fw-la a_o nullo_n genitus_fw-la non_fw-la tres_fw-la ●atres_fw-la filius_fw-la non_fw-la factus_fw-la filius_fw-la unus_fw-la non_fw-la conversione_n divinitatis_fw-la in_o carnem_fw-la aut_fw-la confusione_n substantiarum_fw-la are_z article_n of_o as_o necessary_a belief_n as_o the_o positives_n and_o indeed_o the_o same_o with_o they_o the_o same_o with_o pater_fw-la unus_fw-la pater_fw-la eternus_fw-la filius_fw-la genitus_fw-la filius_fw-la ex_fw-la duabus_fw-la naturis_fw-la consistens_fw-la and_o they_o as_o much_o heretic_n that_o affirm_v any_o of_o these_o negative_n as_o that_o deny_v the_o affirmative_a 2_o lie_n concern_v the_o negative_n in_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o they_o be_v well_o consider_v you_o may_v find_v that_o they_o be_v both_o in_o the_o article_n pretend_v to_o be_v scripture_n and_o reveal_v truth_n and_o that_o all_o or_o most_o of_o they_o be_v equivalent_a to_o affirmative_n and_o as_o new_a and_o positive_a on_o the_o one_o side_n as_o the_o roman_a article_n which_o they_o contradict_v be_v pretend_v on_o the_o other_o and_o the_o protestant_n confession_n of_o faith_n suppose_v he_o oblige_v to_o believe_v these_o negative_n as_o large_a and_o as_o particular_a on_o the_o one_o side_n as_o the_o roman_a or_o tridentine_n be_v on_o the_o other_o as_o to_o the_o main_a controversy_n that_o be_v bandy_v between_o the_o two_o church_n and_o these_o not_o only_o privative_o but_o positive_o opposite_a for_o no_o difference_n can_v be_v make_v in_o the_o thing_n but_o only_o in_o the_o expression_n between_o a_o negative_a and_o positive_a article_n where_o the_o negative_a imply_v and_o be_v equivalent_a to_o the_o affirmative_a of_o its_o contrary_n as_o it_o be_v where_o the_o contrary_n be_v immediate_a and_o the_o one_o of_o they_o be_v necessary_o put_v wherever_o the_o other_o deny_v as_o god_n be_v grant_v a_o substance_n he_o that_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v a_o corporeal_a substance_n in_o this_o he_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o so_o those_o that_o deny_v here_o something_o which_o other_o affirm_v in_o this_o must_v needs_o affirm_v something_o which_o the_o other_o deny_v and_o the_o negative_a may_v be_v as_o we_o please_v change_v into_o another_o positive_a and_o he_o who_o have_v before_o the_o positive_a shall_v have_v now_o the_o negative_a side_n he_o that_o deny_v any_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n to_o go_v into_o any_o temporal_a purgatory_n affirm_v they_o to_o go_v into_o bliss_n or_o pain_n eternal_a and_o he_o that_o affirm_v purgatory_n deny_v this_o so_o he_o that_o deny_v a_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o eucharist_n affirm_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o symbol_n to_o remain_v there_o and_o so_o e_fw-la contra_fw-la hence_o he_o that_o have_v 39_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n whereof_o 30._o be_v in_o the_o expression_n negative_a 9_o positive_a have_v in_o matter_n wherein_o the_o one_o contrary_n be_v exclude_v the_o other_o be_v admit_v as_o it_o be_v in_o most_o of_o these_o article_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v in_o debate_n not_o few_o positive_a article_n of_o his_o faith_n than_o he_o who_o have_v 39_o express_o positive_a and_o again_o he_o who_o have_v 39_o positive_a can_v but_o have_v 39_o negative_a also_o and_o e_fw-la contra_fw-la only_o a_o negative_a confession_n argue_v a_o former_a contest_v and_o as_o faith_n so_o heresy_n be_v conversant_a in_o either_o and_o here_o also_o note_n that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o church_n mere_o to_o exclude_v from_o or_o omit_v in_o her_o article_n or_o confession_n of_o faith_n those_o point_n which_o another_o church_n define_v i._n e_o not_o to_o tie_v her_o subject_n to_o believe_v they_o and_o another_o thing_n to_o tie_v her_o subject_n to_o believe_v the_o negative_n of_o they_o or_o not_o to_o believe_v they_o which_o be_v indeed_o a_o define_v one_o way_n as_o much_o as_o the_o other_o church_n do_v the_o other_o way_n for_o example_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n not_o to_o tie_v her_o subject_n to_o believe_v or_o hold_v the_o roman_a doctrine_n concern_v purgatory_n pardon_n image_n transubstantiation_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n and_o another_o thing_n to_o tie_v her_o subject_n to_o believe_v or_o hold_v that_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n concern_v purgatory_n etc._n etc._n be_v vain_o invent_v or_o ground_v on_o no_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n but_o rather_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 22._o article_n ecclesiae_fw-la anglic._n neither_o can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v here_o more_o just_o question_v in_o she_o not_o leave_v point_n in_o universals_z only_o and_o their_o former_a indifferency_n but_o new-stating_a purgatory_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n than_o the_o reform_a for_o their_o new-stating_a the_o contrary_n to_o these_o which_o to_o make_v more_o perspicuous_a 3._o §._o 85._o n._n 3._o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o of_o those_o who_o seem_v in_o their_o theological_a position_n to_o affirm_v les●_n and_o so_o to_o make_v few_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n than_o some_o other_o do_v there_o be_v two_o sort_n 1._o either_o such_o as_o peremptory_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o those_o additional_n which_o the_o other_o affirm_v 2._o or_o such_o as_o do_v suspend_v their_o judgement_n concern_v such_o additional_n neither_o affirm_v nor_o deny_v they_o for_o truth_n only_o deny_v that_o the_o other_o as_o yet_o do_v prove_v or_o evidence_n they_o to_o be_v so_o now_o though_o it_o may_v be_v say_v of_o these_o late_a that_o indeed_o they_o do_v not_o make_v so_o many_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o new_a definition_n as_o the_o other_o do_v and_o so_o also_o that_o they_o seem_v much_o more_o safe_a and_o modest_a in_o the_o paucity_n of_o their_o credend_n because_o they_o who_o neither_o affirm_v nor_o deny_v a_o tenent_n can_v err_v in_o it_o yet_o the_o former_a who_o deny_v as_o far_o and_o as_o peremptory_o every_o new_a point_n as_o the_o other_o affirm_v it_o these_o can_v free_v themselves_o from_o no_o curiosity_n tyranny_n liableness_n to_o error_n etc._n etc._n wherein_o they_o pretend_v the_o other_o to_o transgress_v nor_o can_v plead_v any_o safety_n in_o their_o doctrine_n viz._n in_o their_o not_o err_v because_o not_o determine_v but_o do_v engage_v every_o whit_n as_o far_o in_o such_o point_n as_o their_o adversary_n do_v one_o in_o hold_v and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v such_o a_o thing_n a_o truth_n the_o other_o in_o hold_v and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v it_o a_o error_n and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o suspend_v not_o her_o judgement_n in_o those_o new_a point_n which_o the_o roman_a define_v nor_o deny_v they_o only_o to_o be_v prove_v or_o clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n but_o deny_v they_o as_o error_n and_o thing_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n so_o purgatory_n adoration_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n indulgence_n be_v declare_v repugnant_a to_o god_n word_n art_n 22._o work_n of_o supereorgation_n art_n 14._o public_a prayer_n or_o ministry_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v by_o the_o people_n art_n 24._o deny_v of_o the_o cup_n to_o the_o people_n art_n 30._o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n art_n 31._o transubstantiation_n art_n 28._o now_o he_o that_o believe_v transubstantiation_n for_o example_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n make_v the_o contrary_a to_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v scripture_n and_o so_o to_o be_v also_o a_o point_n of_o his_o faith_n if_o scripture_n be_v so_o and_o hence_o the_o
vanish_v those_o fancy_n ●_o of_o every_o general_n council_n receive_v a_o commission_n to_o make_v its_o meeting_n authentic_a from_o some_o formal_a act_n or_o tacit_n consent_n of_o the_o church_n diffusive_a of_o the_o assistance_n of_o infallibility_n if_o any_o have_v to_o be_v make_v over_o to_o it_o by_o assignment_n from_o the_o church_n diffusive_a of_o its_o act_n not_o by_o any_o divine_a right_n but_o only_o humane_a delegation_n and_o of_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o its_o decree_n by_o their_o choice_n and_o consent_v only_o not_o upon_o necessity_n 3_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v how_o such_o a_o ecclesiastical_a infallibility_n as_o be_v place_v in_o a_o general_n council_n 3._o q._n 3._o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v serviceable_a or_o at_o least_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n which_o subsist_v §_o 98_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n without_o any_o such_o infallible_a guide_n and_o it_o be_v ask_v also_o by_o what_o infallible_a guide_n in_o the_o long_a interval_n of_o these_o council_n christian_n be_v secure_v §_o 99_o to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o infallibility_n be_v to_o be_v suppose_v to_o accompany_v this_o body_n of_o the_o clergy_n take_v collective_o not_o only_a when_o meet_v in_o a_o general_n council_n but_o out_o of_o it_o whenever_o and_o however_o they_o shall_v manifest_v a_o concurrence_n in_o their_o judgement_n and_o agreement_n in_o their_o doctrine_n whether_o by_o several_a provincial_a council_n assemble_v or_o some_o one_o provincial_a council_n assemble_v confirm_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o allow_v by_o other_o coordinate_a church_n or_o by_o communicatory_a letter_n of_o church_n to_o one_o another_o in_o the_o interval_n of_o great_a meeting_n and_o thus_o be_v infallibility_n resident_a and_o preserve_v in_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n of_o this_o matter_n thus_o mr._n thorndike_n 54._o thorndike_n epilog_n 1_o l_o c._n 8_o p._n 54._o speak_v of_o the_o time_n before_o constantine_n the_o daily_a intercourse_n intelligence_n and_o correspondence_n between_o church_n without_o those_o assembly_n of_o representative_n we_o call_v council_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o visible_o practise_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o thereupon_o i_o conceive_v it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o stand_a council_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o continual_a settle_n of_o trouble_n arise_v in_o some_o part_n and_o tend_v to_o question_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o whole_a by_o the_o consent_n of_o other_o church_n concern_v which_v setlement_n be_v have_v and_o obtain_v by_o mean_n of_o this_o mutual_a intelligence_n and_o correspondence_n the_o hold_v of_o council_n be_v a_o way_n of_o far_o great_a dispatch_n but_o the_o express_a consent_n of_o church_n obtain_v upon_o the_o place_n be_v a_o more_o certain_a foundation_n of_o peace_n etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o and_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o disc_n 1._o §_o 18._o to_o the_o second_o that_o in_o the_o interval_n of_o council_n if_o any_o new_a error_n dangerous_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o condemn_v by_o no_o former_a general_n council_n do_v molest_v the_o church_n she_o by_o some_o of_o the_o forename_a way_n wherein_o she_o be_v unerrable_a if_o there_o be_v no_o convenience_n of_o assemble_v a_o general_n council_n suppress_v it_o but_o if_o a_o error_n former_o condemn_v and_o crush_v by_o a_o general_a council_n begin_v to_o exalt_v itself_o and_o grow_v again_o that_o there_o need_v no_o more_o to_o quiet_v it_o than_o that_o the_o present_a church_n governor_n do_v put_v in_o execution_n the_o former_a unerring_a decree_n of_o those_o council_n 4_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 4._o q._n 4._o how_o lawful_a general_n council_n can_v be_v maintain_v all_o unerring_a §_o 100_o which_o council_n experience_n have_v show_v to_o have_v contradict_v one_o another_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o he_o who_o say_v so_o either_o take_v some_o council_n to_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_a one_o that_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n as_o state_v before_o §_o 11_o 12._o &_o 2._o disc_n §_o 23._o etc._n etc._n or_o take_v some_o of_o their_o definition_n to_o contradict_v which_o do_v not_o so_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n or_o urge_v thing_n in_o some_o age_n common_o receive_v or_o practise_v in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o great_a latitude_n as_o thing_n then_o define_v but_o if_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o these_o aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o some_o private_a member_n thereof_o she_o deny_v such_o contradiction_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v in_o any_o of_o the_o general_a council_n that_o she_o receive_v 5_o again_o it_o be_v ask_v 5._o q._n 5._o if_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v err_v in_o the_o define_n of_o something_o not_o necessary_a and_o again_o §_o 101_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o no_o exact_a distinction_n can_v be_v make_v of_o such_o from_o necessary_n how_o any_o christian_a can_v be_v secure_a for_o any_o particular_a point_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o both_o such_o council_n and_o himself_o do_v not_o err_v in_o it_o i_o answer_v 1_o that_o if_o what_o be_v suppose_v shall_v be_v grant_v yet_o still_o be_v such_o christian_a as_o believe_v all_o the_o council_n propose_v secure_a that_o his_o faith_n be_v deficient_a in_o nothing_o necessary_a and_o that_o protestant_n think_v the_o like_a security_n sufficient_a in_o their_o own_o faith_n for_o they_o hold_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n clear_a even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a in_o all_o necessary_n and_o believe_v all_o the_o scripture_n say_v though_o they_o can_v exact_o distinguish_v necessary_a point_n therein_o from_o other_o yet_o affirm_v their_o faith_n to_o be_v secure_a because_o actual_o not_o err_v in_o any_o point_n clear_a and_o so_o also_o not_o in_o any_o point_n necessary_a 2_o that_o as_o to_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n call_v necessary_a they_o be_v both_o by_o council_n sufficient_o discern_v from_o non-necessaries_a and_o propose_v as_o necessary_n and_o so_o by_o christian_n believe_v as_o such_o in_o these_o particular_n therefore_o they_o be_v certain_a of_o their_o not_o err_v and_o as_o to_o other_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o christian_n to_o know_v that_o if_o necesiary_n they_o do_v not_o err_v in_o they_o though_o which_o in_o particular_a be_v necessary_a and_o so_o certain_o not_o err_v in_o they_o know_v not_o but_o meanwhile_o do_v those_o who_o urge_v thus_o a_o uncertainty_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o catholic_n in_o attach_n their_o judgement_n to_o council_n which_o in_v not_o necessary_n be_v supyose_v liable_a to_o error_n make_v themselves_z any_o better_a provision_n for_o the_o protestant_n faith_n in_o remit_v they_o from_o council_n unto_o their_o own_o judgement_n which_o in_o necessary_n also_o they_o grant_v be_v liable_a to_o error_n at_o least_o upon_o their_o not_o use_v due_a industry_n their_o be_v sway_v by_o passion_n interest_n etc._n etc._n which_o every_o humble_a man_n sure_o will_v suspect_v himself_o of_o soon_o than_o a_o council_n 6_o again_o it_o be_v much_o press_v that_o upon_o the_o pretence_n 6._o q._n 6._o that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a §_o 102_o no_o error_n of_o such_o council_n can_v ever_o be_v correct_v or_o remedy_v neither_o by_o a_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n or_o yet_o by_o another_o council_n general_n i_o answer_v if_o the_o council_n be_v as_o it_o be_v pretend_v infallible_a no_o need_n of_o correct_v a_o error_n where_o be_v none_o if_o it_o be_v fallible_a yet_o if_o so_o only_o in_o non-necessaries_a no_o great_a harm_n if_o christian_n in_o such_o a_o point_n be_v mislead_v but_o great_a if_o private_a man_n throw_v off_o the_o guide_n upon_o such_o pretence_n they_o shall_v so_o come_v in_o some_o necessary_a point_n to_o miscarry_v but_o indeed_o for_o general_a council_n to_o be_v fallible_a in_o necessary_n also_o this_o i_o grant_v will_v be_v a_o thing_n most_o mischievous_a to_o the_o church_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v never_o thus_o err_v see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 6._o &_o disc_n 1._o §_o 7.14_o and_o indeed_o the_o objection_n here_o i._n e._n the_o ruin_n which_o such_o error_n will_v bring_v upon_o christianity_n consider_v the_o obedience_n command_v to_o these_o council_n be_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n that_o thus_o they_o never_o err_v nor_o consequent_o need_v reformation_n §_o 103_o but_o meanwhile_o those_o who_o urge_v this_o that_o the_o error_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o a_o universal_a obligation_n of_o belief_n to_o it_o can_v never_o be_v rectify_v or_o reform_v consider_v not_o that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n in_o admit_v a_o reformation_n of_o any_o its_o suppose_a error_n no_o truth_n
notitiam_fw-la fidei_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o fidem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la certitudinem_fw-la habet_fw-la ex_fw-la lumine_fw-la divinae_fw-la scientiae_fw-la quae_fw-la decipi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o biel_n 1._o biel_n in_o 3._o send_v 23_o d._n q._n 2._o a._n 1._o hoc_fw-la autem_fw-la ita_fw-la intelligendum_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la scientia_fw-la certior_fw-la sit_fw-la certitudine_fw-la evidentiae_fw-la fides_n verò_fw-la certior_fw-la firmitate_fw-la adhaesionis_fw-la majus_n lumen_fw-la in_o scientiâ_fw-la majus_fw-la robur_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la et_fw-la hoc_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la actus_fw-la imperatus_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la concurrit_fw-la credere_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la actus_fw-la intellectus_fw-la vero_fw-la assentientis_fw-la productus_fw-la ex_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la imperio_fw-la again_o p._n 86._o faith_n say_v he_o be_v a_o evidence_n as_o well_o as_o knowledge_n and_o the_o belief_n be_v firm_a than_o any_o knowledge_n can_v be_v because_o it_o rest_v upon_o divine_a authority_n which_o can_v deceive_v whereas_o knowledge_n or_o at_o least_o he_o that_o think_v he_o know_v be_v not_o ever_o certain_a in_o deduction_n from_o principle_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o shall_v deny_v such_o a_o divine_a or_o infuse_a faith_n wrought_v in_o christian_n by_o god_n spirit_n beside_o and_o beyond_o the_o evidence_n which_o a_o moral_a certainty_n rational_o afford_v let_v they_o declare_v how_o a_o christian_n faith_n be_v necessary_o a_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n where_o there_o be_v no_o effect_n in_o it_o that_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o spirit_n but_o all_o that_o they_o attribute_v to_o it_o be_v necessary_o consequent_a to_o another_o humane_a and_o rational_a evidence_n and_o no_o other_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n of_o the_o divine_a truth_n allege_v by_o they_o than_o of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o julius_n caesar_n viz._n a_o credible_a and_o morally-certain_a tradition_n §_o 125_o 4_o therefore_o concern_v any_o certainty_n or_o assurance_n that_o christian_n be_v necessary_o to_o have_v of_o this_o their_o faith_n that_o it_o be_v true_a and_o infallible_a which_o certitude_n all_o true_a believer_n have_v not_o alike_o 4._o alike_o mat._n 14.31_o s._n thom._n 22._o q._n 5_o a._n 4._o here_o also_o i_o think_v all_o be_v agree_v that_o such_o a_o certainty_n one_o may_v have_v from_o the_o inward_a light_n and_o operation_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n though_o he_o shall_v have_v neither_o any_o internal_a scientifical_a demonstration_n thereof_o which_o if_o he_o have_v it_o be_v not_o faith_n nor_o extrinsical_a infallible_a motive_n testimony_n or_o proponent_n thereof_o whatever_a but_o though_o only_o he_o have_v that_o which_o be_v in_o itself_o true_o a_o divine_a revelation_n for_o the_o object_n thereof_o §_o 126_o 5_o since_o the_o church_n may_v be_v consider_v either_o *_o as_o a_o society_n already_o manifest_v by_o divine_a testimony_n and_o revelation_n whether_o this_o write_v the_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o ever_o assist_v and_o guide_v in_o all_o necessary_a truth_n or_o before_o any_o such_o divine_a testimony_n know_v *_o as_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n famous_a in_o wisdom_n innocency_n of_o life_n suffering_n etc._n etc._n thing_n prudential_o move_v we_o to_o credit_v all_o their_o tradition_n both_o church_n here_o agree_v that_o humane_a testimony_n or_o church-tradition_n take_v in_o the_o late_a sense_n in_o its_o make_n know_v to_o we_o what_o be_v these_o divine_a revelation_n or_o this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v only_o introductive_a to_o this_o divine_a faith_n which_o rely_v on_o and_o adhere_v to_o the_o revelation_n hemselves_fw-mi as_o its_o formal_a object_n scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n tradition_n the_o key_n that_o let_v we_o in_o say_v archbp_a lawd_n 86._o lawd_n p._n 86._o divine_a revelation_n write_v or_o unwritten_a be_v the_o formal_a object_n or_o ultimate_v divine_a motive_n into_o which_o we_o resolve_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n tradition_n testify_v or_o manifest_v to_o we_o these_o matter_n reveal_v be_v a_o condition_n and_o prerequisite_a or_o introductive_a for_o the_o application_n of_o our_o faith_n unto_o those_o divine_a revelation_n on_o which_o we_o exercise_v it_o say_v the_o catholic_n §_o 127_o 6_o catholic_n further_o affirm_v that_o as_o the_o church_n be_v consider_v in_o the_o former_a of_o the_o two_o acception_n formention_v the_o infallible_a authority_n and_o testimony_n thereof_o be_v not_o only_o a_o introductive_a into_o but_o one_o of_o the_o article_n of_o this_o divine_a faith_n as_o be_v ground_v on_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o so_o many_o as_o believe_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o this_o sense_n may_v safe_o resolve_v their_o divine_a faith_n of_o other_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n into_o its_o deliver_v they_o as_o such_o but_o then_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n infallibility_n thus_o believe_v be_v not_o necessary_o the_o ultimate_a principle_n into_o which_o this_o divine_a faith_n of_o other_o article_n be_v resolve_v but_o that_o word_n of_o god_n write_v or_o unwritten_a by_o which_o this_o church-infallibility_a be_v manifest_v to_o they_o and_o again_o that_o whatever_o this_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o every_o one_o for_o attain_v a_o divine_a authority_n and_o save_a faith_n be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o this_o infallible_a church-authority_n or_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o for_o attain_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a belief_n he_o have_v some_o extrinsical_a motive_n or_o proponent_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o any_o other_o save_o the_o prime_a verity_n of_o which_o he_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v infallible_a which_o thing_n be_v copious_o prove_v by_o many_o learned_a catholic_n a_o few_o of_o who_o testimony_n i_o have_v here_o insert_v which_o the_o reader_n may_v pass_v over_o if_o in_o this_o matter_n satisfy_v §_o 128_o concern_v this_o thus_o cardinal_n lugo_n a_o spanish_a jesuit_n speak_v of_o divine_a faith_n 247._o faith_n tom._n de_fw-fr virtute_fw-la fideidisp_n 1._o §._o 12._o p._n 247._o probatur_fw-la facilè_fw-la quia_fw-la hoc_fw-la ipsum_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la habere_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la ex_fw-la assistentia_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la creditur_fw-la fid●_n divinâ_fw-la quae_fw-la docet_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la esse_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ergo_fw-la ante_fw-la ipsius_fw-la fidei_fw-la assensum_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la requiri_fw-la cognitio_fw-la huius_fw-la infallibilis_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la et_fw-la experientia_fw-la docet_fw-la non_fw-la omnes_fw-la pueros_fw-la vel_fw-la adultos_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la novo_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la accedunt_fw-la concipere_fw-la muchless_n infallibiliter_fw-la scire_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la hanc_fw-la infallibilem_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la &_o assistentiam_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la antequam_fw-la ullum_fw-la alium_fw-la articulum_fw-la credant_fw-la credunt_fw-la enim_fw-la articulos_fw-la in_o ordine_fw-la quo_fw-la proponuntur_fw-la hunc_fw-la autem_fw-la articulum_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la ecclesiasticae_fw-la contingit_fw-la credi_fw-la postquam_fw-la alios_fw-la plures_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la solum_fw-la ergo_fw-la potest_fw-la ad_fw-la summum_fw-la praerequiri_fw-la cognoscere_fw-la res_fw-la fidei_fw-la proponi_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la concipiendo_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la secundum_fw-la se_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la maximam_fw-la humanam_fw-la quae_fw-la reperitur_fw-la in_o universâ_fw-la fidelium_fw-la congregatione_fw-la n._n 252._o in_o lege_fw-la naturae_fw-la plures_fw-la credebant_fw-la ex_fw-la solâ_fw-la doctrinâ_fw-la parentum_fw-la sine_fw-la aliâ_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la propositione_n deinde_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la scriptô_o plures_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la moysi_n &_o aliis_fw-la prophetis_fw-la antequam_fw-la eorum_fw-la prophetiae_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la reciperentur_fw-la i_o add_v or_o before_o they_o see_v their_o miracle_n or_o the_o fulfil_n of_o their_o prophecy_n §_o 129_o thus_o estius_n §._o estius_n in._n 3._o send_v 23._o d._n 13._o §._o speak_v also_o of_o this_o divine_a and_o salvifical_a faith_n fidei_fw-la impertinens_fw-la est_fw-la quo_fw-la medio_fw-la deus_fw-la utatur_fw-la ad_fw-la conferendum_fw-la homini_fw-la donum_fw-la fidei_fw-la i._n e._n divinae_fw-la quamvis_fw-la enim_fw-la nunc_fw-la ordinarium_fw-la medium_n sit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la testificatio_fw-la &_o doctrina_fw-la constat_fw-la tamen_fw-la aliis_fw-la viis_fw-la seu_fw-la mediis_fw-la fidem_fw-la collatam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la aliquando_fw-la &_o adhuc_fw-la conferri_fw-la etc._n etc._n nam_fw-la antiqui_fw-la multi_fw-la ut_fw-la abraham_n melchizedech_n job_n ex_fw-la speciali_fw-la revelatione_fw-la apostoli_fw-la ex_fw-la christi_fw-la miraculis_fw-la &_o sermone_fw-la yet_o these_o have_v no_o other_o formal_a or_o ultimate_a motive_n of_o their_o faith_n than_o we_o have_v rursus_fw-la ex_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la praedicatione_n &_o miraculis_fw-la i_o add_v and_o some_o without_o and_o before_o see_v their_o miracle_n and_o other_o by_o a_o credible_a relation_n only_o not_o sight_n of_o their_o miracle_n yet_o all_o these_o man_n faith_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o efficiency_n alii_fw-la fidem_fw-la conceperunt_fw-la alii_fw-la denique_fw-la aliis_fw-la modis_fw-la crediderant_fw-la cùm_fw-la nondùm_fw-la de_fw-la
that_o all_o contain_v in_o s._n matthew_n gospel_n be_v true_a because_o the_o church_n tell_v i_o it_o be_v so_o and_o then_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n tell_v i_o true_a because_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o some_o one_o part_n of_o his_o word_n that_o the_o church_n in_o this_o shall_v not_o err_v here_o my_o faith_n be_v ultimate_o resolve_v again_o not_o into_o the_o church_n authority_n but_o the_o divine_a revelation_n concern_v the_o church_n but_o if_o 3_o i_o believe_v s._n matthew_n gospel_n true_a because_o the_o church_n tell_v i_o so_o and_o again_o believe_v the_o church_n veracity_n in_o what_o it_o say_v only_o from_o the_o forementioned_a prudential_a motive_n 121._o motive_n §._o 121._o induce_v i_o to_o believe_v so_o here_o i_o resolve_v my_o faith_n into_o these_o credible_a motive_n and_o this_o be_v no_o infuse_v or_o divine_a but_o a_o humane_a and_o acquisite_a faith_n and_o the_o assent_n to_o the_o thing_n believe_v can_v rational_o be_v no_o firm_a or_o strong_a than_o it_o be_v to_o these_o credible_a proof_n thereof_o thus_o then_o when_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o relator_n be_v the_o same_o yet_o the_o thing_n relate_v be_v diverse_o believe_v by_o i_o according_a to_o the_o vary_a of_o those_o ground_n or_o that_o authority_n which_o the_o relator_n urge_v to_o make_v they_o credible_a when_o a_o very_a credible_a person_n relate_v to_o i_o several_a thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o two_o other_o person_n of_o who_o i_o have_v a_o very_a different_a esteem_n the_o one_o account_v by_o i_o very_o skilful_a and_o learned_a in_o his_o art_n the_o other_o not_o so_o here_o i_o give_v a_o assent_n or_o belief_n to_o the_o word_n of_o these_o two_o person_n though_o both_o relate_v to_o i_o with_o the_o same_o fidelity_n very_o different_a much_o strong_a to_o the_o relate_a word_n of_o he_o who_o i_o esteem_v as_o it_o be_v infallible_a in_o his_o skill_n much_o weak_a to_o the_o other_o and_o i_o give_v a_o three_o assent_v different_a from_o both_o these_o to_o the_o veracity_n of_o the_o relator_n or_o to_o the_o credibility_n of_o the_o person_n relate_v these_o thing_n to_o i_o concern_v they_o this_o be_v say_v of_o a_o divine_a faith_n in_o the_o several_a assertion_n precedent_n §_o 135_o that_o it_o be_v produce_v in_o we_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o ground_v still_o on_o divine_a revelation_n but_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a etc._n necessary_a §._o 127_o etc._n etc._n that_o such_o faith_n always_o shall_v have_v a_o external_a rationally-infallible_a ground_n or_o motive_n thereto_o whether_o church-authority_n or_o any_o other_o on_o his_o part_n that_o so_o believe_v yet_o 7_o it_o be_v also_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v morally-certain_a or_o infallible_a ground_n or_o motive_n producible_a both_o for_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o faith_n in_o general_n and_o for_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o as_o they_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o ground_n or_o any_o equal_a to_o they_o no_o other_o religion_n beside_o christianity_n nor_o in_o christianity_n no_o other_o sect_n or_o seduce_v private_a spirit_n out_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v possible_o plead_v or_o pretend_v to_o so_o that_o though_o many_o seduce_a spirit_n as_o it_o be_v in_o emulation_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o do_v use_n to_o pretend_v and_o set_v up_o themselves_o for_o assurer_n of_o a_o divine_a faith_n and_o many_o time_n do_v effect_v so_o firm_a a_o adherence_n to_o most_o false_a revelation_n as_o that_o from_o this_o persuasion_n many_o have_v expose_v themselves_o even_o to_o suffer_v death_n in_o defence_n of_o their_o error_n yet_o this_o ever_o remain_v a_o constant_a way_n of_o distinguish_v to_o the_o world_n and_o to_o all_o man_n reason_n a_o true_a divine_a faith_n wrought_v by_o god_n holy_a spirit_n from_o these_o counterfeit_a one_o wrought_v by_o the_o evil_a spirit_n that_o catholic_n for_o this_o divine_a faith_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o work_v in_o they_o as_o to_o such_o a_o supernatural_a powerful_a and_o vivifical_a efficacy_n thereof_o yet_o always_o have_v beside_o this_o many_o extrinsical_a motive_n and_o assurance_n to_o render_v it_o i_o say_v not_o divine_a which_o such_o motive_n can_v do_v but_o in_o reason_n credible_a and_o acceptable_a to_o themselves_o and_o other_o which_o no_o false_a religion_n no_o false_a faith_n can_v produce_v or_o lay_v claim_v to_o i_o mean_v still_o the_o former_a motive_n which_o whenas_o the_o internal_a plerophory_n of_o this_o faith_n wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o public_o conspicuous_a or_o manifestive_a abroad_o be_v a_o stand_v rational_a evidence_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o christianity_n against_o all_o other_o sect_n of_o religion_n and_o against_o all_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n only_o of_o these_o motive_n it_o be_v affirm_v that_o without_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n spirit_n they_o be_v never_o able_a to_o found_v a_o divine_a faith_n and._n that_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n many_o time_n a_o divine_a faith_n be_v produce_v without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o they_o concern_v this_o see_v the_o former_a quotation_n §_o 133._o and_o here_o first_o a_o rational_a certainty_n or_o moral_o infallible_a ground_n of_o a_o christian_n faith_n for_o this_o point_n §_o 136_o that_o the_o scripture_n i_o mean_v as_o to_o the_o main_a body_n of_o they_o those_o few_o book_n set_v aside_o which_o the_o protestant_n call_v apocryphal_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o whatever_o be_v contain_v therein_o and_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o be_v ground_v thereon_o infallible_a be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n as_o well_n as_o catholic_n and_o 1_o this_o certainty_n protestant_n do_v affirm_v to_o arise_v from_o that_o plenary_a church-tradition_n which_o be_v find_v to_o have_v deliver_v these_o to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o divine_a revelation_n throughout_o all_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n which_o apostle_n confirm_v they_o with_o miracle_n of_o which_o thus_o the_o archbp_a 124._o archbp_a p._n 124._o if_o you_o speak_v say_v he_o to_o a._n c._n of_o assurance_n only_o in_o general_n and_o not_o of_o that_o by_o divine_a faith_n i_o must_v then_o make_v bold_a to_o tell_v you_o and_o it_o be_v the_o great_a advantage_n which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v against_o infidel_n a_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v nay_o infallible_o assure_v by_o ecclesiastical_a and_o humane_a proof_n man_n that_o never_o see_v rome_n may_v be_v sure_a and_o infallible_o believe_v that_o such_o a_o city_n there_o be_v by_o historical_a and_o acquire_v faith_n and_o if_o consent_v of_o humane_a story_n can_v assure_v i_o this_o why_o shall_v not_o consent_v of_o church_n story_n assure_v i_o the_o other_o that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n deliver_v this_o body_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o again_o certain_z it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o by_o humane_a authority_n consent_n and_o proof_n a_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v infallible_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o a_o acquire_v habit_n of_o faith_n out_o non_fw-la subest_fw-la falsum_fw-la i._n e._n speak_v of_o a_o usual_a and_o constant_a moral_a certainty_n and_o non-falsity_n of_o thing_n but_o he_o can_v be_v assure_v infallible_o by_o divine_a faith_n cvi_fw-la subesse_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la falsum_fw-la i.e._n speak_v of_o a_o absolute_a possibility_n of_o falsity_n or_o mistake_n of_o thing_n especial_o by_o the_o divine_a power_n interpose_v in_o which_o sense_n nothing_o be_v free_a from_o deception_n save_v divine_a revelation_n but_o by_o a_o divine_a testimony_n §_o 137_o and_o mr._n stillingfleet_n say_v of_o the_o same_o tradition_n 211_o tradition_n p._n 205_o 211_o that_o the_o moral_a certainty_n that_o be_v therein_o 207._o therein_o p._n 207._o yield_v we_o a_o sufficient_a assurance_n that_o the_o matter_n deliver_v to_o we_o to_o be_v believe_v be_v infallible_o true_a and_o consider_v the_o nature_n of_o moral_a thing_n be_v a_o certainty_n as_o great_a and_o beget_v as_o firm_a a_o assent_n as_o any_o certainty_n mathematical_a or_o physical_a the_o great_a physical_a certainty_n say_v he_o be_v as_o liable_a to_o question_v as_o moral_a there_o be_v as_o great_a a_o possibility_n of_o deception_n in_o that_o as_o a_o suspicion_n of_o doubt_n in_o this_o and_o oftentimes_o great_a though_o his_o discourse_n there_o 207._o there_o p._n 207._o that_o where_o god_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v we_o have_v the_o great_a assurance_n that_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v infallible_o true_a because_o god_n can_v oblige_v man_n to_o believe_v a_o lie_n from_o whence_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o we_o have_v a_o sufficient_a assurance_n that_o christian_a religion_n be_v infallible_o true_a only_o from_o a_o moral_a certainty_n thereof_o if_o he_o
with_o this_o reservation_n unless_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o appear_v evidence_n to_o he_o in_o god_n word_n now_o of_o the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n on_o his_o side_n that_o he_o have_v no_o doubt_n §_o 17._o the_o iii_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n the_o just_a condition_n thereof_o observe_v §_o 18._o that_o he_o conceive_v he_o owe_v no_o obedience_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 1._o because_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n with_o so_o much_o certainty_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o faith_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o many_o question_n mention_v by_o mr._n chilling-worth_n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o protestant_n wherein_o he_o must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v concern_v it_o which_o see_v disc_n 3._o §_o 86._o &c_n &c_n §_o 18._o 2._o because_o though_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n yet_o it_o may_v err_v even_o in_o necessary_n if_o it_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v as_o he_o can_v show_v it_o be_v not_o 3._o that_o though_o yield_v to_o be_v general_o accept_v it_o may_v err_v still_o in_o non-necessaries_a and_o that_o protestant_n can_v prove_v this_o point_n to_o be_v otherwise_o 4._o that_o the_o leader_n of_o this_o council_n be_v plain_o a_o party_n contestingt_fw-fr his_o for_o many_o year_n before_o with_o the_o other_o side_n condemn_v and_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n 5._o all_o these_o exception_n cancel_v and_o obedience_n grant_v due_a to_o this_o council_n yet_o that_o so_o there_o be_v due_a to_o it_o not_o that_o of_o assent_n but_o only_o of_o silence_n §_o 19_o 6._o but_o yet_o not_o that_o of_o silence_n neither_o from_o he_o consider_v his_o present_a persuasion_n that_o indeed_o the_o affirmative_a in_o this_o point_n be_v a_o error_n manifest_a and_o intolerable_a concern_v which_o matter_n his_o party_n have_v long_o complain_v to_o their_o superior_n and_o produce_v sufficient_a evidence_n yet_o these_o have_v proceed_v to_o no_o redress_n of_o it_o §_o 20._o 7._o but_o yet_o that_o he_o will_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o future_a council_n if_o it_o right_o consider_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o tenant_n decree_v that_o which_o be_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o he_o be_v convince_v thereof_o §_o 22._o the_o iv_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n §_o 23._o that_o he_o can_v right_o according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n be_v accuse_v as_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o several_a reason_n 1._o because_o protestant_n hold_v heresy_n to_o be_v a_o obstinate_a defence_n of_o some_o error_n against_o a_o fundamental_a he_o think_v from_o hence_o his_o tenant_n free_v from_o be_v a_o heresy_n as_o long_o as_o in_o silence_n he_o retain_v it_o unless_o he_o engage_v further_o to_o a_o public_a pertinacious_a maintain_v thereof_o §_o 23._o 2._o fundamental_o vary_v according_a to_o particular_a person_n and_o sufficient_a proposal_n none_o can_v conclude_v this_o point_n in_o the_o affirmative_a to_o be_v as_o to_o he_o a_o fundamental_a or_o of_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n 3._o that_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n declare_v some_o point_n heresy_n do_v not_o necessary_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v so_o because_o they_o may_v err_v in_o fundamental_o or_o at_o least_o in_o distinguish_v they_o from_o other_o point_n §_o 26._o 4._o that_o he_o can_v have_v no_o autocatacrisie_n or_o obstinacy_n in_o a_o dissent_v from_o their_o definition_n till_o he_o be_v either_o actual_o convince_v or_o at_o least_o have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n either_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o point_n define_v or_o that_o such_o council_n have_v authority_n to_o require_v submission_n of_o judgement_n and_o assent_v to_o their_o definition_n of_o which_o conviction_n or_o sufficient_a proposal_n that_o vary_v much_o according_a to_o the_o differ_a condition_n of_o several_a person_n as_o to_o himself_o none_o can_v judge_v save_o himself_o and_o consequent_o neither_o can_v they_o judge_v of_o his_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n ib._n the_o v._o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 28._o 1._o that_o the_o socinian_n church_n have_v not_o forsake_v the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n or_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o it_o but_o only_o leave_v one_o part_n of_o it_o that_o be_v corrupt_v and_o reform_v another_o part_n i._n e._n themselves_z or_o that_o he_o and_o the_o socinian_n church_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n they_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a because_o not_o from_o themselves_o §_o 28._o 2._o that_o their_o separation_n be_v for_o a_o error_n unjust_o impose_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n the_o schism_n be_v not_o they_o who_o make_v the_o separation_n but_o they_o who_o cause_v it_o §_o 29._o beside_o that_o what_o ever_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n be_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v require_v by_o any_o church_n to_o profess_v they_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o their_o separation_n can_v be_v say_v causeless_a and_o so_o schism_n §_o 32._o 3._o that_o though_o he_o and_o his_o party_n have_v forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o other_o church_n yet_o not_o the_o internal_a in_o which_o they_o remain_v still_o unite_v to_o they_o both_o in_o that_o internal_a communion_n of_o charity_n in_o not_o condemn_v all_o other_o church_n as_o non-catholick_n and_o in_o that_o of_o faith_n in_o all_o essential_o and_o fundamental_o and_o in_o all_o such_o point_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n consist_v §_o 30._o 4._o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o consubstantiality_n for_o which_o they_o depart_v be_v deny_v by_o they_o to_o be_v any_o fundamental_a nor_o can_v the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o depart_v for_o it_o be_v a_o competent_a judge_n against_o they_o that_o it_o be_v so_o §_o 34._o 5._o that_o though_o they_o be_v separater_n from_o the_o roman_a yet_o not_o from_o the_o reform_a church_n which_o church_n leave_v man_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o judgement_n nor_o require_v any_o internal_a assent_n to_o their_o doctrine_n in_o which_o thing_n these_o blame_n the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n save_v only_o conditional_a if_o any_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o or_o not_o convince_v of_o the_o contrary_n §_o 35._o 6._o in_o fine_a that_o for_o enjoy_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o protestant_a communion_n he_o make_v as_o full_a a_o profession_n of_o conformity_n to_o her_o doctrine_n as_o mr._n chillingworth_n have_v do_v in_o several_a place_n of_o his_o book_n which_o yet_o be_v accept_v as_o sufficient_a 〈◊〉_d 41._o the_o four_o discourse_n conference_n i._n the_o socinian_n protestant_a plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 1_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o three_o former_a discourse_n concern_v the_o invalidity_n of_o the_o protestant_n guide_v for_o preserve_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o suppress_v heresy_n may_v be_v clearly_o see_v and_o more_o serious_o consider_v i_o have_v think_v fit_a in_o this_o for_o a_o example_n to_o show_v what_o apology_n a_o socinian_n upon_o the_o forementioned_a protestant-position_n may_v return_v for_o himself_o to_o a_o protestant_a endeavour_v to_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o use_v any_o of_o these_o five_o motive_n thereto_o the_o testimony_n 1._o of_o scripture_n 2._o of_o catholic_n church_n 3._o of_o her_o council_n 4._o the_o danger_n of_o heresy_n 5._o the_o danger_n of_o schism_n in_o which_o will_v not_o be_v think_v to_o go_v about_o to_o equal_v all_o other_o protestant-opinion_n to_o the_o malignity_n of_o the_o socinian_n error_n but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o several_a defence_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o former_a motive_n protestant_n use_v for_o retain_v they_o if_o these_o be_v think_v just_a and_o reasonable_a the_o socinian_o may_v use_v the_o same_o for_o much_o grosser_n tenant_n for_o suppose_v a_o protestant_n first_fw-mi concern_v the_o scripture_n question_v a_o socinian_n in_o this_o manner_n prot._n why_o do_v you_o to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o salvation_n not_o believe_v god_n the_o son_n to_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o substance_n with_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v so_o principal_a a_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n soc._n to_o give_v you_o a_o satisfactory_a account_n of_o this_o matter_n i_o do_v believe_v with_o other_o christian_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o with_o other_o protestant_n that_o they_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o
my_o faith_n §_o 2_o prot._n but_o this_o secure_v you_o not_o unless_o you_o believe_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n which_o in_o this_o point_n you_o do_v not_o soc._n however_o i_o believe_v in_o this_o point_n true_o or_o false_o i_o be_o secure_a that_o my_o faith_n be_v entire_a as_o to_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n prot._n how_o so_o soc_n because_o as_o mr._n chillingworth_n say_v 367._o say_v p._n 23._o p._n 159_o 367._o he_o that_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o bible_n all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o do_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a there_o prot._n this_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a but_o meanwhile_o if_o there_o be_v either_o some_o part_n of_o scripture_n not_o know_v at_o all_o by_o you_o or_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o some_o part_n of_o that_o you_o know_v for_o the_o scripture_n as_o that_o author_n note_n 87._o note_n chill_n p._n 87._o be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o word_n as_o the_o sense_n be_v mistake_v by_o you_o how_o can_v you_o say_v you_o believe_v all_o the_o scripture_n for_o when_o you_o say_v you_o believe_v all_o the_o scripture_n you_o mean_v only_o this_o that_o you_o believe_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o that_o be_v god_n word_n and_o most_o certain_o true_a which_o belief_n of_o you_o do_v very_o well_o consist_v with_o your_o not_o believe_v or_o also_o your_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o and_o then_o you_o not_o believe_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o some_o part_n of_o it_o at_o least_o may_v also_o not_o believe_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o something_o necessary_a there_o which_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o your_o conclusion_n here_o §_o 3_o soc._n 18._o soc._n chill_n p._n 18._o i_o believe_v that_o that_o sense_n of_o they_o which_o god_n intend_v whatsoever_o it_o be_v be_v certain_o true_a and_o thus_o i_o believe_v implicit_o even_o those_o very_a truth_n against_o which_o i_o err_v next_o ib._n next_o chill_n ib._n i_o do_v my_o best_a endeavour_n to_o believe_v scripture_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o by_o my_o best_a endeavour_n i_o mean_v 19_o mean_v chill_n p._n 19_o such_o a_o measure_n of_o industry_n as_o humane_a prudence_n and_o ordinary_a discretion_n my_o ability_n and_o opportunity_n my_o distraction_n and_o hindrance_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n consider_v shall_v advise_v i_o unto_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n of_o use_v which_o endeavour_n also_o i_o conceive_v i_o may_v be_v sufficient_o certain_a for_o otherwise_o i_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n i_o believe_v from_o this_o complete_a rule_n of_o scripture_n this_o due_a endeavour_n be_v the_o condition_n which_o protestant_n require_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o to_o all_o necessary_n deceive_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n now_o be_v conscious_a to_o myself_o of_o such_o a_o right_a endeavour_n use_v 102._o use_v chillingw_n p._n 102._o for_o i_o to_o believe_v further_o this_o or_o that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o some_o scripture_n or_o to_o believe_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o and_o to_o avoid_v the_o false_a be_v not_o necessary_a either_o to_o my_o faith_n or_o salvation_n for_o if_o god_n will_v have_v have_v his_o meaning_n in_o these_o place_n certain_o know_v how_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o his_o wisdom_n to_o be_v so_o want_v to_o his_o own_o will_n and_o end_n as_o to_o speak_v obscure_o or_o how_o can_v it_o consist_v with_o his_o justice_n to_o require_v of_o man_n to_o know_v certain_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v not_o reveal_v 18.92_o reveal_v chill_n p._n 18.92_o for_o my_o error_n or_o ignorance_n in_o what_o be_v not_o plain_o contain_v in_o scripture_n after_o my_o best_a endeavour_n use_v to_o say_v that_o god_n will_v damn_v i_o for_o such_o error_n who_o be_o a_o lover_n of_o he_o and_o lover_n of_o truth_n be_v to_o rob_v man_n of_o his_o comfort_n and_o god_n of_o his_o goodness_n be_v to_o make_v man_n desperate_a and_o god_n a_o tyrant_n §_o 4_o prot._n but_o this_o defence_n will_v no_o way_n serve_v your_o turn_n for_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n for_o you_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o some_o point_n a_o express_a and_o explicit_a faith_n soc._n of_o what_o point_n prot._n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v fundamental_a and_o necessary_a soc._n then_o if_o this_o point_n of_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o god_n the_o father_n be_v none_o of_o the_o fundamental_o and_o necessary_n wherein_o i_o be_o to_o have_v a_o right_n and_o a_o explicit_a faith_n the_o account_n i_o have_v give_v you_o already_o i_o hope_v be_v satisfactory_a §_o 5_o ●_o but_o next_o i_o be_o secure_a that_o this_o point_n which_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o our_o discourse_n at_o least_o in_o the_o affirmative_a thereof_o be_v no_o fundamental_a for_o according_a to_o the_o protestant_a principle_n 92._o principle_n chill_n p._n 92._o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n as_o sufficient_o perfect_a so_o sufficient_o intelligible_a in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o all_o that_o have_v understanding_n whether_o learned_a or_o unlearned_a neither_o be_v any_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o be_v plain_o reveal_v for_o to_o say_v that_o when_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o ambiguous_a term_n lie_v indifferent_a between_o divers_a sense_n whereof_o one_o be_v true_a and_o the_o other_o false_a that_o god_n oblige_v man_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n not_o to_o mistake_v through_o error_n and_o humane_a frailty_n be_v to_o make_v god_n a_o tyrant_n and_o to_o say_v that_o he_o require_v of_o we_o certainty_n to_o attain_v that_o end_n for_o the_o attain_n whereof_o we_o have_v no_o certain_a mean_n in_o fine_a 59_o fine_a chill_n p._n 59_o where_o scripture_n be_v plain_a as_o they_o be_v in_o necessary_n they_o need_v no_o infallible_a interpreter_n no_o further_a explanation_n too_o i_o and_o where_o they_o be_v not_o plain_a there_o if_o i_o use_v diligence_n to_o find_v the_o truth_n do_v yet_o miss_v of_o it_o and_o fall_v into_o error_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n in_o it_o prot._n true_a such_o necessary_a point_n be_v clear_a to_o the_o unlearned_a use_v a_o due_a industry_n void_a of_o a_o contrary_a interest_n etc._n etc._n soc._n and_o in_o such_o industry_n i_o may_v be_v assure_v i_o have_v not_o be_v deficient_a have_v bestow_v much_o study_n on_o this_o matter_n read_v the_o controversy_n on_o both_o side_n compare_v text_n etc._n etc._n as_o also_o appear_v in_o the_o diligent_a writing_n of_o other_o of_o my_o persuasion_n and_o after_o all_o this_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n also_o which_o i_o embrace_v a_o sense_n you_o know_v decry_v and_o persecute_v by_o most_o christian_n be_v very_o contrary_a to_o all_o my_o secular_a relation_n interest_n and_o profit_n now_o after_o all_o this_o search_n i_o have_v use_v i_o be_o so_o far_o satisfy_v that_o this_o point_n on_o the_o affirmative_a side_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o no_o fundamental_a that_o i_o can_v produce_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a place_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n if_o a_o man_n can_v be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o perspicuity_n of_o its_o expression_n that_o the_o contrary_a of_o it_o be_v so_o see_v crellius_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr uno_fw-la deo_fw-la patre_fw-la haec_fw-la de_fw-la uno_fw-la deo_fw-la patre_fw-la sententia_fw-la plurimis_fw-la ac_fw-la clarissimis_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la liter●ram_fw-la testimoniis_fw-la nititur_fw-la evidens_fw-la sententiae_fw-la veritas_fw-la &_o rationum_fw-la firm●ssimarum_fw-la è_fw-la sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la spontè_fw-fr subnascentium_fw-la multitudo_fw-la ingenii_fw-la nostritenuitatem_fw-la sublevat_fw-la &c_n &c_n argumenta_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la deprompsimus_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la plana_fw-la sunt_fw-la ac_fw-la facilia_fw-la adeo_fw-la quidem_fw-la ut_fw-la eorum_fw-la vim_o de●linare_fw-la aliâ_fw-la ratione_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la adversarii_fw-la quam_fw-la ut_fw-la à_fw-la verborum_fw-la simplicitate_fw-la tum_fw-la ipsi_fw-la deflectant_a tum_fw-la nos_fw-la abducere_fw-la conentur_fw-la and_o see_v the_o particular_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o urge_v where_o as_o to_o the_o expression_n &_o other_o text_n be_v lay_v aside_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v say_v as_o it_o be_v totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la which_o the_o socinian_o maintain_v joh._n 14.28_o 17.3_o ep._n 1_o cor._n 8.6_o col._n 1.15_o &_o rev._n 3.14_o i_o set_v not_o down_o this_o to_o countenance_v their_o cause_n but_o to_o show_v their_o confidence_n §_o 7_o prot._n o_o strange_a presumption_n and_o be_v not_o your_o judgement_n then_o liable_a to_o mistake_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o scripture_n because_o you_o strong_o persuade_v yourself_o they_o be_v most_o evident_a on_o your_o side_n soc._n it_o be_v
and_o either_o these_o evidence_n remain_v still_o unsatisfied_a or_o these_o satisfy_v yet_o some_o other_o new_a one_o appear_v to_o call_v for_o a_o new_a consideration_n soc._n ib._n soc._n stillingf_n ib._n because_o it_o may_v also_o err_v it_o follow_v not_o it_o must_v err_v and_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o it_o shall_v not_o err_v when_o the_o former_a error_n be_v thus_o discover_v and_o if_o the_o council_n proceed_v lawful_o be_v not_o overawe_v etc._n etc._n 526_o etc._n idem_fw-la p._n 526_o but_o however_o if_o i_o ought_v upon_o this_o review_n to_o be_v restrain_v to_o silence_n yet_o i_o not_o convince_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o its_o decree_n this_o silence_n be_v the_o uttermost_a that_o any_o future_a council_n after_o its_o reject_v my_o reason_n can_v just_o exact_v of_o i_o and_o not_o belief_n or_o assent_v at_o all_o it_o may_v not_o oblige_v i_o that_o i_o shall_v relinquish_v that_o you_o call_v socinianism_n at_o all_o but_o that_o not_o divulge_v it_o whereas_o now_o by_o the_o act_n of_o former_a council_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v upon_o what_o rational_a ground_n a_o anathema_n be_v pronounce_v against_o i_o if_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o contrary_a and_o i_o be_o declare_v to_o stand_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n mere_o for_o retain_v this_o opinion_n which_o retain_v it_o be_v call_v obstinacy_n and_o contumacy_n in_o i_o after_o the_o council_n contrary_a definition_n conference_n iv_o 4._o his_o plea_n for_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n §_o 23_o 4_o prot._n you_o know_v that_o all_o heretic_n be_v most_o just_o anathematise_v and_o cut_v off_o from_o be_v any_o long_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o do_v remain_v exclude_v also_o from_o salvation_n now_o this_o tenent_n of_o you_o have_v always_o be_v esteem_v by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n a_o most_o pernicious_a heresy_n soc._n i_o confess_v heresy_n a_o most_o grievous_a crime_n dread_n and_o abhor_v it_o and_o trust_v i_o be_o most_o free_a from_o such_o a_o guilt_n and_o from_o this_o i_o have_v many_o way_n of_o clear_v myself_o for_o heresy_n as_o mr._n chillingworth_n define_v it_o 271._o it_o p._n 271._o be_v not_o a_o err_a but_o a_o obstinate_a defence_n of_o a_o error_n not_o of_o any_o error_n but_o of_o one_o against_o a_o necessary_a or_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 1_o though_o this_o which_o i_o hold_v shall_v be_v a_o error_n and_o that_o against_o a_o fundamental_a yet_o my_o silence_n practise_v therein_o can_v never_o be_v call_v a_o obstinate_a defence_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o not_o my_o tenant_n a_o heresy_n 2_o since_o fundamental_o vary_v according_a to_o particular_a person_n and_o as_o mr._n chillingworth_n say_v †_o no_o catalogue_n thereof_o 134._o p._n 134._o that_o can_v be_v give_v can_v universal_o serve_v for_o all_o man_n god_n require_v more_o of_o they_o to_o who_o he_o give_v more_o and_o less_o of_o they_o to_o who_o he_o give_v less_o and_o that_o may_v be_v sufficient_o declare_v to_o one_o all_o thing_n consider_v which_o all_o thing_n consider_v be_v not_o to_o another_o sufficient_o declare_v and_o variety_n of_o circumstance_n make_v it_o as_o impossible_a to_o set_v down_o a_o exact_a catalogue_n of_o fundamental_o as_o to_o make_v a_o coat_n to_o fit_v the_o moon_n in_o all_o her_o change_n and_o as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n follow_v he_o 99_o he_o p._n 98_o 99_o since_o the_o measure_n of_o fundamental_o depend_v on_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o proposition_n and_o none_o can_v assign_v what_o number_n of_o thing_n be_v sufficient_o propound_v to_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o person_n or_o set_v down_o the_o exact_a bound_n as_o to_o all_o individual_n when_o their_o ignorance_n be_v inexcusable_a and_o when_o not_o or_o tell_v what_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o their_o capacity_n what_o allowance_n god_n make_v for_o the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o education_n etc._n etc._n hence_o i_o conceive_v myself_o free_a from_o heresy_n in_o this_o my_o opinion_n on_o this_o score_n also_o because_o though_o the_o contrary_n be_v to_o some_o other_o a_o fundamental_a truth_n and_o to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v by_o they_o yet_o to_o i_o as_o not_o have_v any_o sufficient_a proposal_n or_o conviction_n thereof_o but_o rather_o of_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v no_o fundamental_a and_o consequent_o my_o tenant_n oppose_v it_o if_o a_o error_n yet_o no_o heresy_n prot._n do_v not_o deceive_v yourself_o for_o though_o according_a to_o different_a revelation_n §_o 24_o to_o those_o that_o be_v without_o law_n or_o those_o under_o the_o law_n or_o those_o under_o the_o gospel_n fundamental_o general_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v more_o to_o some_o than_o other_o yet_o to_o all_o those_o who_o know_v and_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n we_o say_v 92._o say_v chillingw_n p._n 92._o all_o fundamental_o be_v therein_o clear_o propose_v to_o all_o reasonable_a man_n even_o the_o unlearned_a and_o therefore_o the_o err_a therein_o to_o all_o such_o can_v but_o be_v obstinate_a and_o heretical_a soc._n unless_o you_o mean_v only_o this_o that_o all_o fundamental_o i._n e._n so_o many_o as_o be_v require_v of_o any_o one_o be_v clear_a to_o he_o in_o scripture_n but_o not_o all_o the_o same_o fundamental_o there_o clear_a to_o every_o one_o but_o to_o some_o more_o of_o they_o to_o some_o few_o i_o see_v not_o how_o this_o last_o say_v accord_v with_o that_o say_v before_o by_o the_o same_o person_n but_o if_o you_o mean_v thus_o then_o consubstantiality_n the_o point_n we_o talk_v of_o may_v be_v a_o fundamental_a to_o you_o and_o clear_a in_o scripture_n but_o also_o not_o clear_a to_o i_o in_o scripture_n and_o so_o no_o fundamental_a and_o hence_o i_o think_v myself_o safe_a for_o †_o i_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v clear_a to_o i_o in_o scripture_n must_v needs_o believe_v all_o fundamental_o i_o can_v incur_v heresy_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o some_o fundamental_a 367._o fundamental_a chill_a p._n 367._o the_o scripture_n sufficient_o inform_v i_o what_o be_v the_o faith_n must_v of_o necessity_n also_o teach_v i_o what_o be_v heresy_n that_o which_o be_v straight_o will_v plain_o teach_v we_o what_o be_v crooked_a 101_o crooked_a id._n p._n 101_o and_o one_o contrary_a can_v but_o manifest_v the_o other_o prot._n i_o pray_v you_o consider_v a_o little_a better_o what_o you_o say_v last_o for_o since_o heresy_n as_o you_o grant_v it_o be_v a_o obstinate_a defence_n of_o error_n only_o against_o some_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o all_o truth_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o such_o unless_o you_o can_v also_o distinguish_v in_o scripture_n these_o point_n of_o necessary_a faith_n from_o other_o you_o can_v have_v no_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o heresy_n and_o the_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v deliver_v in_o scripture_n though_o it_o may_v preserve_v you_o from_o incur_v heresy_n yet_o can_v direct_v you_o at_o all_o for_o know_v or_o discern_a heresy_n or_o a_o error_n against_o a_o fundamental_a or_o a_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n from_o other_o simple_a and_o less_o dangerous_a error_n that_o be_v not_o so_o nor_o by_o this_o can_v you_o ever_o know_v what_o error_n be_v heresy_n what_o not_o and_o so_o after_o all_o your_o confidence_n if_o by_o your_o neglect_n you_o happen_v not_o to_o believe_v some_o scripture_n in_o their_o true_a sense_n you_o can_v have_v no_o security_n in_o your_o fundamental_a or_o necessary_a faith_n or_o of_o your_o not_o incur_v heresy_n neither_o second_o according_a to_o your_o discourse_n have_v the_o church_n any_o mean_n to_o know_v any_o one_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n because_o she_o can_v never_o know_v the_o just_a latitude_n of_o his_o fundamental_o and_o so_o heresy_n will_v be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n indeed_o but_o walk_v under_o such_o a_o vizard_n of_o nonsufficient_a proposal_n as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n can_v discover_v or_o punish_v it_o therefore_o to_o avoid_v such_o confusion_n in_o the_o christian_a faith_n there_o have_v be_v always_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n some_o authority_n for_o declare_v heresy_n and_o it_o may_v seem_v conviction_n enough_o to_o you_o that_o her_o most_o general_a council_n have_v define_v the_o contrary_a position_n to_o what_o you_o maintain_v and_o receive_v it_o for_o a_o fundamental_a of_o which_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n for_o declare_v heresy_n thus_o dr._n potter_n 97_o potter_n p._n 97_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v careful_a to_o ground_v all_o her_o declaration_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n write_v word_n and_o therefore_o whosoever_o wilful_o oppose_v a_o judgement_n so_o well_o ground_v be_v just_o esteem_v a_o heretic_n not_o proper_o because_o he_o disobeye_n the_o church_n but_o because_o he_o yield_v not_o to_o scripture_n sufficient_o propound_v or_o clear_v unto_o he_o i._n e._n by_o the_o
that_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o nor_o in_o declare_v what_o be_v fundamental_a what_o be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o consequent_o to_o make_v any_o church_n a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o will_v be_v to_o make_v it_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n which_o she_o propose_v and_o require_v to_o be_v believe_v i._n e._n that_o she_o may_v require_v our_o assent_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o device_n of_o her_o propose_v they_o as_o necessary_a §_o 9_o 6_o lie_n when_o the_o church-guide_n be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n 6._o prop._n 6._o catholic_n contend_v that_o necessary_n *_o aught_o not_o to_o be_v take_v here_o in_o so_o strict_a a_o sense_n as_o to_o be_v restrain_v and_o limit_v only_o to_o those_o few_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v so_o indispensable_o require_v to_o be_v of_o all_o man_n explicit_o believe_v as_o that_o salvation_n be_v not_o possible_o consistible_a with_o the_o disbelief_n or_o ignorance_n of_o any_o of_o they_o which_o be_v think_v by_o the_o learned_a to_o be_v only_o some_o few_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n of_o which_o see_v dr._n potter_n §_o 7._o p._n 242._o etc._n etc._n but_o *_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o sense_n more_o enlarge_v comprehend_v at_o least_o *_o all_o such_o point_n as_o be_v so_o requisite_a and_o beneficial_a to_o salvation_n as_o that_o there_o be_v some_o danger_n of_o a_o miscarriage_n therein_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n either_o to_o particular_n or_o to_o the_o whole_a society_n either_o to_o all_o or_o at_o least_o to_o some_o person_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n by_o the_o ignorance_n or_o disbelief_n of_o they_o *_o all_o such_o point_n as_o corroborate_v fundamental_o by_o their_o near_a connexion_n to_o they_o or_o as_o serve_v to_o repel_v the_o malignant_a influence_n of_o some_o error_n that_o either_o direct_o or_o by_o some_o consequence_n at_o least_o undermine_v and_o corrupt_v or_o to_o use_v the_o archbishops_n word_n 5.6_o word_n §_o 35._o n_z 5.6_o grate_v upon_o or_o miss-expounds_a some_o fundamental_a either_o in_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o manner_n §_o 10_o the_o reason_n 1_o because_o our_o saviour_n promise_a assistance_n of_o his_o church_n be_v not_o express_o limit_v to_o necessary_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n by_o any_o of_o those_o text_n that_o mention_v it_o nor_o can_v upon_o any_o account_n of_o the_o superfluousness_n or_o nonnecessity_n of_o such_o assistance_n be_v deny_v to_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o second_o wherever_o any_o error_n in_o such_o point_n though_o they_o be_v not_o principle_n or_o fundamental_o but_o deduction_n and_o superstruction_n appear_v to_o be_v gross_a dangerous_a damnable_a blasphemous_a idololatrical_a grate_v the_o foundation_n which_o sort_n of_o error_n protestant_n grant_v there_o may_v be_v in_o nonfundamentals_a and_o by_o they_o be_v such_o error_n charge_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 119_o rome_n archbishop_n lawd_n §_o ●7_n n_z 5.6_o art_n of_o rel._n 31._o chill_a p._n 119_o but_o it_o seem_v unsuitable_a to_o our_o lord_n love_n and_o everlasting_a protection_n of_o his_o dear_a spouse_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v also_o incident_a to_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o its_o supreme_a guide_n 2_o lie_n because_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o generally-allowed_n primitive_a council_n define_v and_o under_o anathema_n impose_v the_o belief_n of_o many_o several_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o fall_v not_o under_o the_o first_o notion_n of_o necessary_n do_v show_v that_o church-tradition_n have_v always_o understand_v christ_n promise_n make_v to_o the_o church_n as_o extend_v to_o necessary_n in_o the_o second_o acception_n neither_o will_n infallible_a assistance_n in_o necessary_n as_o they_o be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o sense_n extend_v to_o the_o church-definition_n make_v in_o the_o point_v deliver_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n which_o point_v yet_o the_o church_n have_v define_v as_o necessary_a and_o infallible_a again_o since_o it_o be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n that_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n 330._o 〈◊〉_d stillingf_n p._n 330._o accept_v by_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n diffusive_a may_v err_v in_o non-necessaries_a for_o so_o say_v they_o may_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n dissusive_a err_v 141._o err_v see_v archbishop_n lawd_n p_o 139_o 140_o 141._o if_o then_o the_o church-definition_n find_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n be_v also_o to_o be_v reckon_v such_o i._n e._n non-necessaries_a upon_o what_o account_n can_v protestant_n firm_o believe_v they_o for_o true_a except_o so_o many_o as_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n see_v they_o be_v deprive_v of_o any_o confidence_n of_o the_o church_n not_o err_v therein_o as_o be_v point_v reckon_v non-necessaries_a and_o the_o promise_v thus_o restrain_v to_o necessary_n of_o the_o first_o kind_n what_o a_o hurtful_a liberty_n be_v there_o leave_v to_o all_o sect_n to_o question_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o many_o principal_a article_n of_o her_o faith_n as_o for_o example_n to_o the_o socianians_n to_o question_v it_o in_o the_o point_n of_o consubstantiality_n under_o this_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n possibility_n of_o err_v in_o non-necessaries_a 3_o lie_n because_o i_o see_v not_o how_o the_o title_n of_o holy_a continue_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o church-catholick_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n can_v consist_v with_o all_o those_o error_n that_o yet_o do_v oppugn_v necessary_n only_o as_o take_v in_o the_o second_o not_z first_o notion_n call_v gross_a dangerous_a damnable_a blasphemous_a if_o as_o these_o be_v impute_v promise_n to_o the_o catholic_n if_o her_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o practice_n be_v sometime_o damnable_a blasphemous_a etc._n etc._n how_o she_o always_o holy_a because_o by_o the_o same_o divine_a assistance_n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n never_o to_o fall_v into_o heresy_n which_o thing_n also_o infer_v a_o divine_a assistance_n thereof_o beyond_o necessary_n in_o the_o first_o notion_n unless_o they_o will_v affirm_v the_o contradictory_n of_o several_a of_o the_o church-definition_n that_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n or_o the_o first_o allow_v g._n council_n not_o to_o be_v heresy_n §_o 11_o 5_o lie_v because_o one_o reason_n which_o protestant_n give_v why_o our_o lord_n promise_v of_o these_o guide_n non-erring_a be_v to_o be_v restrain_v only_o to_o some_o and_o not_o enlarge_v to_o all_o truth_n be_v *_o because_o they_o be_v by_o and_o unnecessary_a truth_n to_o which_o her_o curiosity_n or_o weakness_n may_v carry_v she_o beyond_o her_o rule_n etc._n etc._n 141._o etc._n archbishop_n lawd_n p._n 141._o *_o because_o they_o be_v such_o point_n as_o may_v be_v various_o hold_v and_o dispute_v without_o hurt_n or_o prejudice_n to_o faith_n *_o because_o they_o be_v unprofitable_a curiosity_n and_o unnecessary_a subtlety_n for_o which_o the_o promise_n be_v not_o make_v *_o because_o deus_fw-la non_fw-la abund●t_fw-la in_o superfluis_fw-la &c_n superfluis_fw-la dr._n po●ter_v p._n 5._o p._n 150_o &c_n &c_n as_o natare_fw-la so_o god_n be_v not_o lavish_a in_o superfluity_n therefore_o what_o point_n though_o not_o necessary_n in_o the_o first_o kind_n yet_o be_v as_o far_o remove_v from_o superfluous_a or_o curiosity_n and_o be_v though_o not_o absolute_o yet_o very_a necessary_a still_o thus_o far_o in_o these_o we_o may_v suppose_v our_o lord_n assistance_n continue_v to_o his_o church_n and_o preserve_v she_o from_o fail_v in_o they_o ‖_o a_o second_o reason_n which_o protestant_n also_o give_v why_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o be_v the_o perspicuity_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o point_n this_o power_n of_o not_o err_v say_v the_o archbishop_n 140._o archbishop_n p._n 140._o be_v in_o the_o church_n partly_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o water_n which_o it_o teach_v which_o be_v the_o unerring_a word_n of_o god_n so_o plain_o and_o manifest_o deliver_v to_o she_o as_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a she_o shall_v universal_o fall_v from_o it_o or_o teach_v against_o it_o in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o doubtless_o many_o more_o point_n there_o be_v as_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n as_o those_o necessary_n of_o the_o first_o rank_n and_o therefore_o no_o reason_n to_o confine_v her_o un-erring_a verdict_n only_o to_o these_o and_o if_o more_o point_n than_o the_o primary_n fundamental_o be_v not_o clear_a in_o scripture_n how_o come_v protestant_n in_o several_a of_o they_o on_o this_o account_n of_o their_o clearness_n in_o scripture_n to_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v the_o supreme_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n 7_o concern_v the_o church-governor_n their_o exact_a distinguish_v of_o fundamental_o §_o 12_o or_o necessary_n from_o non-necessaries_a one_a there_o setm_v no_o
archbishop_n lawd_n p._n 196._o n._n 3._o sill_a p._n 149._o whitby_n p._n 441._o tillois_n rule_n of_o faith_n p._n 20.86_o where_o the_o unlearned_a seem_v also_o to_o be_v put_v in_o lest_o these_o at_o least_o for_o their_o ignorance_n shall_v be_v refer_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o a_o guide_n for_o the_o end_n of_o their_o doubt_n and_o use_v ordinary_a industry_n add_v lest_o private_a man_n jealous_a of_o not_o use_v their_o utmost_a industry_n to_o understand_v aright_o the_o scripture_n shall_v upon_o this_o account_n be_v persuade_v that_o it_o be_v safe_a for_o they_o to_o repair_v and_o adhere_v to_o a_o guide_n next_o that_o for_o all_o other_o controversy_n that_o arise_v in_o non-necessaries_a neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v end_v so_o that_o as_o one_o brief_o state_n the_o case_n 59_o case_n chillingw_n p._n 59_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o contain_v thing_n necessary_a and_o wherein_o error_n be_v dangerous_a need_v no_o infallible_a judge_n or_o interpreter_n or_o rather_o can_v but_o have_v every_o one_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n upon_o supposition_n of_o a_o due_a diligence_n use_v be-because_a they_o be_v plain_a and_o those_o that_o be_v obscure_a need_n none_o because_o they_o contain_v not_o thing_n necessary_a neither_o be_v error_n in_o they_o dangerous_a or_o as_o another_o 86._o another_o tillot_v p._n 86._o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o plain_a text_n every_o one_o may_v be_v certain_a and_o for_o the_o obscure_a one_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a every_o one_o shall_v and_n thus_o have_v no_o live_v judge_n to_o decide_v controversy_n they_o make_v those_o controversy_n so_o much_o the_o few_o that_o need_v decide_n and_o if_o we_o here_o further_a question_n 1._o §._o 39_o n._n 1._o why_o all_o controversy_n in_o necessary_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v clear_o decide_v in_o scripture_n or_o yet_o more_o why_o so_o clear_o decide_v there_o as_o that_o even_o the_o unlearned_a can_v mistake_v in_o they_o mr._n chillingworth_n answer_v they_o be_v so_o because_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v to_o all_o sufficient_o perfect_a and_o sufficient_o intelligible_a in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a and_o my_o reason_n hereof_o say_v he_o be_v convince_a 92._o p._n 92._o and_o demonstrative_a because_o nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o what_o be_v plain_o reveal_v which_o be_v grant_v he_o but_o he_o must_v add_v plain_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o plain_o there_o to_o the_o unlearned_a also_o otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o purpose_n this_o proposition_n therefore_o they_o also_o maintain_v that_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n must_v be_v plain_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n to_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a and_o ground_n it_o on_o this_o reason_n because_o god_n who_o require_v from_o all_o christian_n even_o the_o unlearned_a belief_n of_o such_o necessary_n yet_o have_v leave_v they_o no_o other_o certain_a mean_n of_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o save_v only_o the_o scripture_n 441._o scripture_n see_v chillingw_o p._n 71._o whitby_n p._n 441._o and_o if_o it_o be_v reply_v here_o that_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o refer_v they_o to_o a_o perpetual_a live_a guide_n the_o church_n for_o the_o expound_v and_o declare_v to_o they_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o ambiguous_a scripture_n many_o thing_n they_o object_n against_o it_o 2._o §._o 39_o n._n 2._o one_a 2._o they_o earnest_o dispute_v that_o this_o guide_n the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o be_v not_o infallible_a but_o that_o they_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o γ._n γ._n γ_n ●ly_o they_o ask_v many_o question_n about_o such_o guide_n as_o they_o conceive_v unanswerable_a how_o in_o a_o division_n of_o these_o live_a guide_n etc._n guide_n see_v mr._n stillingft_o p._n 101.508_o &c_n &c_n chillingw_o p._n 93._o whitby_n p._n 430._o etc._n etc._n the_o unlearned_a may_v come_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o right_a and_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o this_o find_v how_o to_o know_v what_o be_v her_o definition_n and_o decree_n what_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o decree_n &_o c_o see_v many_o of_o they_o collect_v in_o 3_o disc_n §_o 86._o contend_v that_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o such_o division_n of_o guide_n have_v no_o certain_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a nor_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n more_o easy_o than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n δ._n δ._n 3._o δ_n last_o they_o say_v 171._o say_v see_v mr._n chillingw_n p_o 61_o 104_o 171._o that_o if_o god_n have_v leave_v christian_n in_o all_o age_n to_o learn_v necessary_n from_o their_o other_o guide_n he_o will_v at_o least_o in_o the_o scripture_n have_v direct_v christian_n to_o repair_v to_o these_o guide_n for_o learning_n of_o they_o ε._n ε._n ε_n and_o again_o for_o the_o division_n happen_v among_o these_o guide_n well_o fore-seen_a by_o he_o he_o will_v have_v tell_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n what_o party_n in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o ought_v to_o follow_v and_o adhere_v to_o as_o that_o they_o shall_v always_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n or_o to_o the_o most_o general_a council_n and_o in_o dissent_v vote_n here_o to_o the_o major_a part_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n and_o indeed_o this_o assertion_n that_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a or_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o any_o sort_n of_o christian_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n whereby_o to_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n save_v only_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o main_a pillar_n on_o which_o mr._n chillingworth_n and_o his_o follower_n sustain_v the_o protestant_a religion_n and_o the_o reformation_n pref_o reformation_n see_v chillingw_o pref_o before_o i_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o these_o 155.156_o these_o 30._o etc._n etc._n comp_n c._n 2._o §._o 155.156_o i_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o note_v to_o you_o 1_o that_o the_o devolving_a the_o decision_n of_o controversy_n not_o upon_o the_o sufficiency_n only_o but_o upon_o the_o clearness_n 1._o §._o 40._o n._n 1._o of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n 1._o 1._o and_o decline_v any_o constant_a adhesion_n to_o the_o church_n judgement_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o it_o seem_v not_o a_o little_a prejudicial_a to_o the_o protestant_n cause_n in_o that_o this_o be_v observe_v of_o old_a by_o tertullian_n austin_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o other_o father_n 35._o father_n tertull._n de_fw-fr p●aescriptione_n adversn_v heretic_n s._n aust_n ep._n ●22_n contr_n a_o maximinum_n l._n 1._o vincent_n lir._n c._n 35._o to_o have_v be_v the_o way_n that_o all_o former_a heresy_n have_v take_v decline_v the_o church_n and_o its_o tradition_n and_o pretend_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o support_n of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a heretic_n thus_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n sive_fw-la apud_fw-la suos_fw-la sive_fw-la alienos_fw-la etc._n etc._n nihil_fw-la unquam_fw-la penè_fw-la de_fw-la suis_fw-la proferunt_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la etiam_fw-la scripturae_fw-la verbis_fw-la adumbrare_fw-la conent●r_fw-la lege_fw-la pauli_n samozateni_n opuscula_fw-la priscilliani_n eunom●i_n joviniani_fw-la reliquarumque_fw-la pestium_fw-la cernas_fw-la infinitam_fw-la exemplorum_fw-la congeriom_n prope_fw-la nullam_fw-la omitti_fw-la pag_n nam_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la novi_fw-la aut_fw-la veteris_fw-la testamenti_fw-la sentent●i_fw-la fucata_fw-la &_o colorata_fw-la sit_fw-la then_o inquire_v in_o this_o case_n 35._o case_n contra_fw-la haereses_fw-la c._n 35._o quonian_n modo_fw-la in_o scripture_n sanctis_fw-la ●atholici_fw-la homines_fw-la veritatem_fw-la â_fw-la falsitate_fw-la discernent_fw-la he_o answer_v 38._o answer_v c._n 38._o hoc_fw-la scilicet_fw-la facere_fw-la magnopere_fw-la curabunt_fw-la ut_fw-la divinum_fw-la canonem_fw-la secundum_fw-la universalis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la traditiones_fw-la &_o juxta_fw-la catholici_fw-la dogmatis_fw-la regulas_fw-la interpretentur_fw-la and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v also_o observable_a in_o that_o new-revived_n most_o dangerous_a heresy_n of_o socinianism_n which_o draw_v up_o for_o itself_o against_o church-authority_n muchwhat_a the_o same_o plea_n as_o be_v here_o above_o make_v by_o these_o protestant_n some_o of_o which_o that_o you_o may_v compare_v they_o i_o have_v transcribe_v you_o here_o out_o of_o volkelius_n 7._o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la religione_fw-la l._n 5._o c_o 7._o a_o little_a contract_v there_o than_o he_o say_v quae_fw-la de_fw-la fido_fw-it in_o christum_fw-la statuenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la ex_fw-la sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la patere_fw-la cha●itatem_fw-la quo_fw-la que_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la ita_fw-la descriptam_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la quicunque_fw-la eam_fw-la ex_fw-la animo_fw-la colere_fw-la mentemque_fw-la advertere_fw-la velit_fw-la ignorare_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la quid_fw-la sibi_fw-la sit_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la partibus_fw-la sequendum_fw-la praesertim_fw-la si_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la petat_fw-la quam_fw-la ille_fw-la nemini_fw-la denegat_fw-la again_n deum_n qui_fw-la religionem_fw-la christianam_fw-la usque_fw-la admundi_fw-la finem_fw-la vigere_fw-la voluit_fw-la cuirass_n etiam_fw-la tale_n aliquid_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la
to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v convince_v of_o it_o in_o some_o other_o sort_n than_o by_o the_o bare_a determination_n of_o the_o council_n only_o but_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o be_v ready_a express_o to_o believe_v it_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v unto_o we_o see_v dr._n hammond_n of_o heresy_n p._n 96._o '_o it_o be_v hence_o manifest_a also_o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o reverence_n that_o be_v by_o all_o sober_a christian_n deem_v due_a and_o pay_v to_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n because_o one_a they_o set_v down_o and_o convince_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 2_o because_o they_o be_v so_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v fetch_v from_o those_o man_n and_o church_n to_o who_o they_o have_v commit_v it_o thus_o he_o though_o beside_o that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o council_n be_v almost_o at_o 300._o year_n distance_n the_o reason_n of_o obedience_n to_o church_n governor_n give_v by_o doctor_n hammond_n elsewhere_o 903._o elsewhere_o of_o fundamental_o p._n 903._o viz._n '_o because_o christ_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o those_o governor_n as_o his_o immediate_a successor_n in_o the_o prophetic_a pastoral_n episcopal_a office_n infer_v that_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o all_o age_n be_v equal_o valid_a and_o so_o void_v this_o reason_n he_o go_v on_o three_o because_o the_o great_a fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o definition_n yet_o he_o say_v see_v disc_n 1._o §_o 6._o that_o general_a council_n be_v no_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o and_o 115._o and_o of_o heresy_n p._n 115._o that_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o the_o apostolicalness_n of_o they_o and_o the_o force_n of_o the_o testification_n whereby_o they_o be_v approve_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o which_o give_v the_o authority_n to_o the_o council_n and_o nothing_o else_o be_v sufficient_a where_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v see_v mr._n chillingw_o p._n 118._o dr._n potter_n 2._o §._o 41._o n._n 2._o together_o with_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n attribute_v to_o the_o church_n nay_o to_o particular_a church_n and_o i_o subscribe_v to_o his_o opinion_n a_o authority_n of_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o plain_a and_o evident_a scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o infallibility_n whilst_o they_o proceed_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n and_o p._n 200._o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o aftertime_n i._n e._n after_o the_o apostle_n might_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o declare_v their_o judgement_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o general_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o to_o oblige_v other_o to_o receive_v their_o declaration_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n what_o warrant_v they_o have_v i_o know_v not_o he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n be_v to_o have_v this_o authority_n or_o that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o age_n and_o then_o expire_v he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o of_o these_o thing_n let_v he_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v yet_o i_o willing_o confess_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n though_o not_o infallible_a be_v yet_o so_o far_o directive_n and_o oblige_v that_o without_o apparent_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v be_v sin_n to_o reject_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o afford_v it_o a_o outward_a submission_n for_o public_a peace_n sake_n see_v mr._n whitby_n p._n 92._o we_o do_v appeal_v to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n not_o because_o we_o believe_v they_o infallible_a but_o because_o we_o conceive_v they_o to_o agree_v with_o scripture_n which_o be_v infallible_a so_o that_o we_o make_v they_o secondary_a not_o primary_n guide_n we_o resolve_v not_o our_o belief_n of_o their_o decree_n into_o their_o authority_n but_o into_o their_o agreement_n with_o scripture_n we_o do_v not_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v this_o or_o that_o because_o any_o one_o of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n have_v define_v it_o but_o because_o what_o the_o council_n have_v define_v be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n therefore_o do_v we_o believe_v it_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o any_o article_n they_o dissent_v from_o scripture_n we_o shall_v in_o that_o as_o much_o oppose_v they_o as_o we_o do_v you_o and_z p._n 451._o i_o answer_v with_o dr_n taylor_n that_o either_o these_o council_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n or_o not_o if_o the_o first_o then_o be_v they_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o it_o and_o to_o be_v follow_v no_o further_o than_o they_o adhere_v to_o this_o unerring_a rule_n examine_v he_o mean_v by_o those_o person_n who_o yet_o these_o council_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_z p._n 15._o we_o general_o acknowledge_v that_o no_o authority_n on_o earth_n oblige_v to_o internal_a assent_n this_o the_o firm_a ground_n i._n e._n his_o own_o judgement_n what_o conciliary_a decree_n agree_v or_o disagree_v with_o scripture_n that_o this_o young_a man_n build_v on_o for_o the_o confute_v of_o mr._n cressy_n book_n see_v mr._n stillingfleet_n p._n 58._o 59_o 133_o 154_o 252._o and_o 375.517_o compare_v there_o he_o say_v on_o one_o side_n p._n 375._o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n look_v on_o it_o as_o her_o duty_n to_o keep_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o general_a council_n and_o we_o profess_v say_v he_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o p._n 56._o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v deliver_v as_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n here_o he_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o submission_n of_o protestant_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n and_o to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o their_o guide_n for_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o way_n to_o consist_v with_o a_o profession_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o same_o church_n or_o her_o council_n only_o when_o or_o as_o far_o as_o they_o agree_v in_o their_o decree_n with_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o last_o imply_v that_o i_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n not_o from_o they_o but_o another_o and_o assent_n to_o they_o where_o they_o conform_v to_o that_o judgement_n of_o which_o i_o learn_v it_o ibid_fw-la he_o have_v these_o two_o proposition_n 2_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a prescription_n against_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o this_o 2_o that_o such_o doctrine_n may_v well_o be_v judge_v destructive_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o unanimous_o condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n within_o that_o time_n where_v he_o allow_v not_o christian_n to_o try_v and_o so_o assent_v to_o or_o dissent_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n by_o what_o appear_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o refer_v they_o to_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o decree_n of_o these_o first_o council_n but_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o contend_v how_o consistent_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n judgement_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v any_o infallible_a rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o p._n 17._o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n he_o say_v it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a to_o imagine_v that_o the_o chcurch_n of_o england_n do_v own_o that_o necessity_n pure_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o those_o thing_n therein_o which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a it_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o her_o sense_n in_o her_o 19_o and_o 20_o article_n and_o that_o hence_o the_o suppose_a necessity_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o article_n of_o this_o creed_n must_v accord_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v resolve_v either_o into_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o into_o that_o necessity_n which_o suppose_v clear_a conviction_n that_o the_o thing_n therein_o contain_v be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o p._n 133._o he_o describe_v the_o catholic_n church_n a_o society_n of_o such_o person_n who_o all_o
the_o present_a roman_a church_n where_o christian_a religion_n now_o as_o ancient_o enjoy_v its_o freedom_n to_o see_v which_o of_o they_o resemble_v the_o constitution_n aspect_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n church_n we_o find_v they_o of_o a_o very_a different_a temper_n proportion_n and_o pretension_n one_o of_o they_o by_o much_o the_o great_a and_o through_o the_o universe_n most_o dilate_a body_n and_o communion_n that_o be_v in_o christianity_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o government_n law_n faith_n and_o discipline_n with_o a_o certain_a subordination_n of_o all_o the_o member_n and_o officer_n thereof_o one_o under_o ecclesiastical_a head_n so_o that_o if_o we_o suppose_v the_o church-catholick_n where_o be_v many_o divide_a christian_a society_n or_o confederacy_n separate_v from_o one_o another_o in_o their_o communion_n to_o be_v but_o one_o unanimous_a body_n of_o they_o concern_v which_o see_v 2_o disc_n §_o 26._o n._n 1._o §_o 27._o n._n 3._o and_o it_o again_o to_o be_v for_o universality_n the_o great_a of_o those_o body_n this_o must_v be_v it_o and_o again_o if_o we_o suppose_v a_o general_n council_n assemble_v of_o all_o these_o its_o vote_n will_v have_v the_o predominancy_n over_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n take_v a_o part_n and_o in_o any_o conjunction_n of_o they_o all_o in_o such_o a_o meeting_n it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v imagine_v from_o the_o agreement_n which_o the_o most_o considerable_a of_o the_o other_o church_n have_v with_o it_o in_o most_o of_o the_o western_a controversy_n that_o in_o vote_v they_o its_o party_n will_v be_v increase_v soon_o than_o any_o other_o §_o 73_o again_o this_o great_a body_n also_o we_o find_v have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n unite_v to_o and_o join_v with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n like_o that_o church-catholick_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o we_o find_v it_o use_v its_o authority_n still_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o then_o do_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n still_o pretend_v itself_o upon_o our_o saviour_n promise_n in_o its_o supreme_a council_n join_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o chair_n a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a guide_n in_o the_o determination_n of_o all_o necessary_a faith_n to_o who_o all_o its_o subject_n owe_v not_o only_a silence_n but_o submission_n of_o judgement_n and_o belief_n we_o find_v it_o from_o time_n to_o time_n as_o the_o ancient_a church_n when_o any_o new_a controversy_n opinion_n and_o sect_n arise_v any_o way_n dangerous_a make_v new_a definition_n and_o more_o explication_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o enlarge_n from_o age_n to_o age_n for_o which_o also_o its_o adversary_n complain_v of_o it_o the_o particular_a and_o explicit_a knowledge_n and_o profession_n thereof_o among_o her_o child_n as_o the_o heterodox_n grow_v more_o particular_a and_o multiplicious_a in_o those_o error_n that_o will_v any_o way_n undermine_v it_o as_o also_o ancient_o the_o nicene_n creed_n be_v think_v a_o necessary_a supply_n to_o the_o apostolic_a and_o again_o the_o large_a athanasian_n to_o the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o these_o her_o definition_n now_o as_o then_o she_o pass_v under_o anathema_n to_o opposer_n or_o dissenter_n declare_v heretic_n still_o as_o they_o be_v esteem_v ancient_o such_o as_o oppose_v they_o because_o such_o after_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v now_o wilful_o and_o contumacious_o err_v and_o schismatic_n such_o as_o depart_v on_o what_o cause_n soever_o from_o her_o communion_n as_o vindicate_v to_o herself_o compound_v in_o her_o supreme_a representative_a of_o all_o those_o particular_a church_n that_o remain_v undivided_a from_o s._n peter_n chair_n the_o true_a title_n and_o right_a of_o the_o catholic_n church_n §_o 74_o again_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n and_o as_o authorize_v immediate_o by_o our_o lord_n we_o find_v she_o hold_v herself_o oblige_v and_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o give_v and_o promulgate_v her_o law_n in_o matter_n clear_o spiritual_a and_o divine_a secular_a power_n whether_o favour_v or_o frown_v to_o all_o her_o subject_n however_o disperse_v in_o several_a temporal_a dominion_n presume_v still_o and_o think_v great_a reason_n for_o it_o to_o use_v as_o much_o spiritual_a authority_n in_o their_o state_n when_o prince_n a_o e_o become_v christian_n and_o her_o son_n as_o all_o grant_v she_o lawful_o to_o have_v do_v when_o they_o be_v yet_o heathen_a and_o her_o enemy_n we_o find_v she_o also_o press_v this_o obedience_n to_o her_o decree_n on_o her_o child_n not_o *_o from_o promise_v as_o s._n austin_n 1._o austin_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la c._n 1._o say_v the_o manichee_n ancient_o do_v which_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o his_o writing_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la before_o that_o the_o thing_n we_o believe_v be_v prove_v to_o we_o evident_a proof_n or_o demonstration_n though_o these_o be_v not_o want_v but_o *_o from_o her_o authority_n and_o commission_n receive_v from_o our_o lord_n to_o decide_v all_o controversy_n she_o think_v necessary_a and_o *_o from_o the_o traditive_a sense_n of_o holy_a scripture_n deliver_v to_o she_o from_o her_o forefather_n and_o so_o also_o it_o be_v in_o this_o church_n that_o her_o subject_n as_o soon_o as_o any_o thing_n be_v clear_v to_o they_o to_o be_v the_o church_n doctrine_n dispute_v it_o no_o far_o but_o present_o resign_v their_o judgement_n thereto_o and_o 1._o and_o 75._o n._n 1._o as_o we_o find_v it_o publish_v with_o great_a authority_n its_o law_n to_o all_o its_o subject_n and_o member_n where_o ever_o reside_v so_o also_o by_o our_o lord_n order_n mat_n 28.19_o diligent_o send_v forth_o its_o mission_n into_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n among_o stranger_n and_o those_o out_o of_o its_o fold_n whether_o infidel_n or_o heretic_n for_o convert_v or_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o christian_a and_o catholic_n faith_n and_o to_o this_o body_n and_o that_o since_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o first_o when_o also_o it_o be_v muchwhat_a the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v now_o do_v most_o of_o the_o northern_a nation_n owe_v their_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n and_o at_o that_o time_n our_o ancestor_n among_o the_o rest_n under_o ethelbert_n and_o his_o successor_n receive_v that_o roman_a profession_n of_o religion_n which_o 900._o year_n after_o under_o edward_n the_o six_o they_o cast_v off_o and_o by_o the_o same_o indefatigable_a zeal_n labour_n and_o suffering_n of_o its_o missioner_n be_v still_o those_o great_a conversion_n of_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n make_v both_o in_o the_o west_n and_o east-indies_n and_o southern_a part_n of_o africa_n not_o to_o insist_v here_o on_o the_o late_a reduction_n of_o some_o of_o the_o christian_a sect_n also_o of_o the_o northern_a and_o eastern_a part_n to_o the_o roman_a communion_n where_v in_o call_v to_o mind_n god_n gracious_a promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n 13.10_o nation_n mat._n 24.14_o mark_n 13.10_o and_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o be_v bring_v into_o his_o fold_n 11._o fold_n rom._n 11._o which_o we_o see_v both_o heretofore_o and_o at_o the_o present_a to_o be_v effect_v sole_o or_o principal_o by_o this_o body_n through_o great_a hazard_n and_o much_o expense_n of_o its_o blood_n i_o desire_v all_o sober_a person_n to_o consider_v whether_o the_o good_a god_n have_v thus_o promise_v to_o the_o nation_n bread_n *_o will_v give_v they_o instead_o thereof_o but_o a_o stone_n and_o have_v promise_v they_o the_o revelation_n of_o his_o truth_n yet_o *_o will_v not_o send_v it_o to_o they_o but_o abase_v and_o mix_v with_o a_o manifold_a idolatry_n as_o protestant_n imagine_v the_o worship_v of_o dead_a man_n and_o of_o a_o breaden_a god_n and_o these_o bring_v in_o among_o they_o by_o antichrist_n himself_o if_o the_o head_n of_o these_o missioner_n the_o pope_n be_v so_o thus_o only_o satan_n fight_v against_o satan_n and_o popery_n against_o heathenism_n *_o will_v not_o i_o say_v communicate_v unto_o they_o these_o water_n of_o life_n to_o drink_v of_o unless_o mortify_v as_o it_o be_v 1_o st_z with_o several_a error_n as_o the_o protestant_n say_v gross_a damnable_a and_o perilous_a to_o their_o salvation_n and_o from_o which_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n ought_v to_o separate_v and_o again_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o the_o protestant_n say_v of_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n who_o they_o count_v now_o above_o 1000_o year_n old_a his_o full_a age_n be_v foretell_v to_o be_v 1260._o be_v now_o not_o far_o off_o i_o desire_v he_o next_o to_o consider_v *_o whether_o that_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v instead_o of_o the_o roman_a the_o most_o pure_a and_o orthodox_n religion_n recover_v by_o luther_n and_o to_o which_o therefore_o these_o nation_n if_o not_o already_o must_v be_v
grecian_a opinion_n be_v since_o but_o what_o they_o be_v when_o first_o the_o reformation_n be_v make_v now_o jeremias_n his_o declaration_n be_v not_o long_o after_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o cyril_n above_o 50._o year_n after_o his_o 2_o concern_v the_o newness_n of_o cyril_n opinion_n the_o word_n of_o knowles_n ibid._n be_v considerable_a who_o there_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o reverend_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o that_o he_o desire_v to_o reform_v many_o error_n and_o to_o enlighten_v much_o of_o the_o blindness_n of_o his_o church_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v a_o reformer_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o these_o other_o be_v in_o the_o western_a which_o also_o appear_v from_o the_o complaint_n and_o persecution_n against_o he_o more_o than_o against_o his_o predecessor_n by_o the_o agent_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n upon_o this_o pretence_n knowles_n ibid._n and_o he_o be_v say_v 528._o say_v spondan_n a._n d._n 1638._o franc._n à_fw-fr s._n clarâ_fw-la system_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n 528._o at_o last_o for_o certain_a crime_n object_v to_o he_o and_o among_o other_o charge_v with_o innovation_n in_o religion_n by_o the_o greek_n to_o have_v be_v imprison_v and_o short_o after_o execute_v and_o another_o cyril_n ab_fw-la iberia_n former_o reject_v to_o have_v be_v repossess_v of_o his_o chair_n but_o 3_o how_o contrary_a soever_o cyril_n opinion_n be_v to_o those_o of_o jeremias_n yet_o the_o same_o testimony_n abovenamed_a 162._o abovenamed_a §._o 158._o n_o 2._o 165_o 162._o that_o show_v jeremias_n to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n show_v cyril_n whoever_o have_v new_o reform_v he_o not_o to_o be_v so_o but_o 4_o indeed_o his_o declaration_n though_o it_o seem_v purposely_o mould_v according_a to_o the_o calvinist_n expression_n be_v very_o short_a and_o spare_v general_a and_o unclear_a extend_v to_o few_o point_n and_o wave_v the_o rest_n and_o forbear_v there_o to_o mention_v any_o one_o point_n save_o that_o of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a gho_n it_o wherein_o the_o greek_n differ_v from_o the_o reform_v as_o sure_o in_o some_o they_o do_v and_o again_o those_o point_n therein_o in_o which_o cyril_n seem_v more_o clear_o to_o contradict_v both_o jeremias_n and_o the_o roman_a tenant_n namely_o the_o deny_v of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o transubstantiation_n if_o therein_o he_o intend_v to_o deny_v all_o sort_n of_o purgatory_n though_o not_o by_o five_o and_o all_o transmutation_n of_o the_o element_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v unquestionable_o singular_a and_o not_o own_v by_o the_o greek_n as_o be_v show_v before_o and_o as_o be_v witness_v also_o by_o some_o reform_a etc._n reform_a §._o 167_o 169._o etc._n etc._n out_o of_o the_o common_a relation_n of_o the_o grecian_a opinion_n and_o practice_n 5_o if_o cyril_n or_o any_o other_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v entertain_v any_o reform_v and_o new_a opinion_n diverse_a from_o his_o predecessor_n whilst_o such_o a_o one_o be_v not_o follow_v in_o they_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v to_o be_v style_v not_o its_o doctrine_n but_o his_o own_o and_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v that_o patriarch_n as_o well_o as_o other_o may_v be_v heretical_a for_o in_o several_a age_n some_o have_v be_v so_o but_o 6_o if_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n shall_v also_o have_v concur_v with_o cyril_n in_o such_o innovation_n then_o will_v this_o only_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v true_a of_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o of_o the_o protestant_n that_o they_o also_o have_v reform_v from_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n 1._o from_o the_o former_a as_o well_o greek_a church_n as_o latin_a and_o so_o this_o fact_n of_o they_o will_v prove_v no_o just_a plea_n for_o the_o protestant_a practice_n if_o a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n catholic_n b●_n schism_n but_o only_o the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o same_o guilt_n to_o another_o church_n the_o four_o discourse_n contain_v the_o socinian_o apology_n for_o the_o believe_a and_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o former_a church-definition_n and_o present_a church-authority_n upon_o the_o protestant_n ground_n divide_v into_o five_o conference_n the_o i._o conference_n the_o socinian_n protestant-plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 2._o 1_o that_o he_o believe_v all_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o therefore_o implicit_o believe_v those_o truth_n against_o which_o he_o err_v ib._n 2._o that_o also_o he_o use_v his_o best_a endeavour_n to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o more_o be_v not_o require_v of_o he_o from_o god_n for_o his_o faith_n or_o salvation_n than_o do_v his_o best_a endeavour_n for_o attain_v it_o §_o 3._o 3._o that_o as_o for_o a_o explicit_a faith_n require_v of_o some_o point_n necessary_a he_o be_v sufficient_o assure_v that_o this_o point_n concern_v the_o son_n consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n as_o to_o the_o affirmative_a be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o protestant_n affirm_v all_o necessary_n to_o be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a which_o this_o in_o the_o affirmative_a be_v not_o to_o he_o §_o 4._o 4._o that_o several_a express_v and_o plain_a scripture_n do_v persuade_v he_o that_o the_o negative_a if_o either_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o from_o the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n he_o have_v as_o much_o certainty_n in_o this_o point_n as_o protestant_n can_v have_v from_o they_o in_o some_o other_o hold_v against_o the_o common_a expression_n of_o the_o former_a time_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 6_o 8._o 5._o that_o for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o scripture_n either_o he_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o a_o just_a industry_n use_v or_o else_o that_o protestant_n in_o assert_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a only_o to_o the_o industrious_a and_o then_o that_o none_o be_v certain_a when_o they_o have_v use_v a_o just_a industry_n thus_o must_v still_o remain_v also_o uncertain_a in_o their_o faith_n as_o not_o know_v whether_o some_o defect_n in_o this_o their_o industry_n cause_v they_o not_o to_o mistake_v the_o scripture_n 6._o last_o that_o none_o have_v use_v more_o diligence_n in_o the_o search_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o socinian_o as_o appear_v by_o their_o writing_n addict_v themselves_o whole_o to_o this_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v any_o way_n by_o ass_v by_o any_o other_o humane_a either_o modern_a or_o ancient_a authority_n §_o 5._o digress_v where_o the_o protestant_n and_o socinian_n pretend_a certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n apprehend_v by_o they_o and_o make_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n declare_v by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v examine_v §_o 9_o the_o ii_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o as_o this_o can_v just_o oblige_v §_o 13._o 1_o that_o a_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n such_o as_o the_o protestant_n require_v for_o the_o prove_v of_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v necessary_a can_v never_o be_v show_v concern_v this_o point_n of_o consubstantiality_n §_o 13._o and_o that_o the_o consent_n to_o such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o major_a part_n be_v no_o argument_n sufficient_a since_o the_o protestant_n deny_v the_o like_a consent_n valid_a for_o several_a other_o point_n §_o 14._o 2._o that_o suppose_v a_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o all_o age_n in_o this_o point_n yet_o from_o hence_o a_o christian_n have_v no_o security_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n if_o this_o point_n whether_o way_n soever_o hold_v be_v a_o non-necessary_a for_o that_o in_o such_o it_o be_v say_v the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v §_o 15._o 3._o that_o this_o article_n be_v in_o the_o affirmative_a put_v in_o the_o creed_n prove_v it_o not_o as_o to_o the_o affirmative_a a_o necessary_a §_o 16._o 1_o because_o not_o original_o in_o the_o creed_n but_o add_v by_o a_o council_n to_o which_o creed_n if_o one_o council_n may_v add_v so_o may_v another_o of_o equal_a authority_n in_o any_o age_n and_o whatever_o restrain_v the_o make_v by_o a_o former_a council_n 2._o because_o several_a article_n of_o the_o late_a creed_n be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o upon_o a_o previous_a conviction_n that_o they_o be_v divine_a revelation_n §_o 16._o 4._o last_o that_o though_o the_o whole_a church_n deliver_v for_o truth_n in_o any_o point_n the_o contrary_a to_o that_o he_o hold_v he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o resign_v his_o judgement_n to_o she_o except_o conditional_o and_o
of_o their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n word_n understand_v with_o piety_n and_o the_o fetch_v their_o definition_n regular_o from_o the_o sense_n thereof_o which_o the_o general_a church_n have_v receive_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n 96._o apostle_n of_o heresy_n p._n 96._o upon_o which_o follow_v that_o in_o such_o case_n where_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n do_v not_o so_o as_o possible_o it_o may_v and_o inferior_n be_v to_o consider_v for_o themselves_o whether_o it_o do_v not_o there_o may_v be_v no_o heretical_a autocatacrifie_n in_o a_o descent_n from_o it_o nor_o this_o dissent_n a_o evidence_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d his_o be_v pervert_v and_o sin_v wilful_o and_o without_o excuse_n last_o thus_o mr._n stillingfleet_n concern_v heresy_n 73._o heresy_n p._n 73._o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o heresy_n be_v deny_v something_o suppose_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o therefore_o 2_o none_o can_v reasonable_o be_v accuse_v of_o heresy_n but_o such_o as_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o that_o which_o they_o deny_v be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o therefore_o 3_o none_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v any_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v that_o whatever_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n definition_n can_v make_v any_o heretic_n but_o such_o as_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o her_o definition_n from_o hence_o also_o he_o gather_v that_o protestant_n be_v in_o less_o danger_n of_o heresy_n than_o papist_n till_o these_o give_v they_o more_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o whatever_o the_o church_n declare_v be_v certain_o reveal_v by_o god_n thus_o he_o now_o such_o sufficient_a prove_v reason_n as_o protestant_n plead_v that_o papist_n have_v not_o yet_o give_v they_o concern_v this_o matter_n of_o church-authority_n i_o allege_v that_o neither_o have_v they_o nor_o other_o give_v i_o to_o be_v self-condemned_n therefore_o in_o my_o dissent_n from_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a i_o must_v first_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n propose_v to_o i_o to_o believe_v and_o so_o to_o remain_v self-condemned_n and_o heretical_a in_o disbelieve_v it_o this_o point_n viz._n that_o the_o church_n or_o her_o council_n have_v power_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o to_o require_v my_o assent_n thereto_o which_o so_o long_o as_o i_o find_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v i_o suppose_v i_o be_o free_v without_o obstinacy_n or_o heresy_n or_o be_v therein_o self-condemned_n from_o yield_v assent_n to_o any_o particular_a matter_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o church_n define_v and_o have_v i_o sufficient_a reason_n propose_v to_o i_o for_o believe_v this_o point_n yet_o so_o long_o as_o i_o be_o not_o actual_o convince_v thereof_o i_o become_v only_o guilty_a of_o a_o fault_n of_o ignorance_n not_o obstinacy_n or_o autocatacrisie_n or_o heresy_n for_o if_o i_o be_o self-condemned_n or_o guilty_a of_o obstinacy_n in_o disbelieve_v the_o foresay_a point_n 99_o point_n see_v mr._n stillingf_n p._n 99_o then_o i_o become_v so_o either_o by_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o this_o point_n or_o without_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o this_o it_o can_v be_v for_o this_o very_a power_n of_o define_v be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v clear_v to_o i_o by_o the_o church_n define_v it_o 74_o it_o still_o p._n 74_o and_o thus_o that_o thing_n be_v propose_v to_o i_o in_o the_o definition_n to_o be_v believe_v which_o must_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o i_o already_o before_o such_o proposal_n or_o definition_n or_o else_o the_o definition_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v 99_o believe_v ib._n p._n 99_o nor_o without_o or_o before_o such_o definition_n can_v i_o have_v a_o autocatacrisie_n because_o this_o autocatacrisy_n you_o say_v with_o dr._n hammond_n arise_v from_o my_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n prot._n methinks_v you_o make_v the_o same_o plea_n for_o yourself_o in_o this_o matter_n as_o if_o one_o that_o be_v question_v for_o not_o obey_v the_o divine_a precept_n or_o not_o believe_v the_o divine_a revelation_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n shall_v think_v to_o excuse_v himself_o by_o this_o answer_n that_o indeed_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o therefore_o he_o conceive_v that_o he_o can_v reasonable_o be_v require_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v contain_v therein_o and_o as_o such_o a_o person_n have_v as_o much_o reason_n though_o this_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n yet_o from_o apostolical_a tradition_n to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n as_o to_o believe_v what_o be_v write_v in_o it_o so_o have_v you_o though_o not_o from_o the_o nicen_n council_n define_v it_o yet_o from_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n manifest_v it_o as_o much_o reason_n to_o believe_v its_o authority_n of_o define_v as_o what_o it_o define_v it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o have_v you_o not_o sufficient_a proposal_n or_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o know_v this_o your_o duty_n of_o assent_n to_o this_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a you_o be_v faultless_a in_o it_o but_o herein_o lie_v your_o danger_n that_o from_o find_v a_o non_fw-fr actual_a conviction_n of_o the_o truth_n within_o hinder_v there_o by_o i_o know_v not_o what_o supine_n negligence_n or_o strong_a self-conceit_n etc._n etc._n you_o gather_v a_o non_fw-fr sufficient_a proposal_n without_o §_o 37_o soc._n it_o remain_v then_o to_o inquire_v who_o shall_v judge_v concern_v this_o sufficient_a proposal_n or_o sufficient_a reason_n which_o i_o be_o say_v to_o have_v to_o believe_v what_o the_o nicen_n council_n or_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v in_o this_o point_n 73._o point_n stillingf_n p._n 73._o whether_o the_o church_n judgement_n be_v to_o be_v take_v by_o i_o in_o this_o or_o my_o own_o make_a use_n of_o if_o her_o judgement_n the_o ground_n of_o my_o belief_n and_o of_o heresy_n lie_v still_o in_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o thus_o it_o will_v be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n whether_o i_o believe_v what_o she_o declare_v without_o sufficient_a reason_n or_o learn_v this_o of_o she_o when_o there_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v so_o it_o must_v be_v then_o my_o own_o judgement_n i_o be_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o in_o this_o matter_n 479._o matter_n see_v still_a p._n 479._o and_o if_o so_o than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v that_o god_n do_v both_o afford_v i_o some_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v mistake_v therein_o and_o also_o some_o certain_a knowledge_n when_o i_o do_v use_v this_o mean_n aright_o for_o without_o these_o two_o i_o can_v have_v no_o security_n in_o my_o own_o judgement_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o high_a concernment_n as_o heresy_n and_o fundamental_a faith_n be_v now_o this_o mean_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o presume_v i_o have_v daily_o use_v in_o that_o i_o find_v my_o conscience_n after_o much_o examination_n therein_o to_o acquit_v i_o unless_o you_o can_v prescribe_v i_o some_o other_o sure_a evidence_n without_o send_v i_o back_o again_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n prot._n whilst_o your_o discovery_n of_o your_o tenant_n to_o be_v a_o heresy_n depend_v on_o your_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v it_o be_v so_o and_o 2_o the_o judgement_n of_o your_o have_v or_o not_o have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v this_o be_v leave_v to_o yourself_o the_o church_n have_v no_o mean_n to_o know_v you_o or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v a_o heretic_n till_o they_o declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o and_o thus_o in_o strive_v to_o free_v yourself_o from_o heresy_n you_o have_v free_v all_o mankind_n from_o it_o as_o to_o any_o external_a discovery_n and_o convincement_n thereof_o and_o cancel_v such_o a_o sin_n unless_o we_o can_v find_v one_o that_o will_v confess_v himself_o to_o maintain_v a_o thing_n against_o his_o own_o conscience_n soc._n if_o i_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n for_o they_o also_o hold_v none_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v any_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n unless_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v that_o what_o ever_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o of_o this_o sufficient_a reason_n they_o make_v not_o the_o church_n or_o superior_n but_o themselves_o the_o judge_n the_o v._o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n 5._o prot._n i_o have_v yet_o one_o thing_n more_o about_o which_o to_o question_v you_o if_o you_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v your_o opinion_n heresy_n in_o oppose_v the_o public_a judgement_n §_o 28_o and_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n
true_a that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n blind_v man_n to_o peace_n to_o her_o determination_n reserve_v to_o man_n the_o liberty_n of_o their_o judgement_n on_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n if_o they_o violate_v that_o peace_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a on_o the_o one_o side_n where_o a_o church_n pretend_v infallibility_n the_o excommunication_n be_v direct_v against_o the_o person_n for_o refuse_v to_o give_v internal_a assent_n to_o what_o she_o define_v but_o where_o a_o church_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o that_o the_o excommunication_n respect_v whole_o that_o overt_a act_n whereby_o the_o church_n peace_n be_v break_v and_o if_o a_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o look_v to_o her_o own_o peace_n no_o doubt_n she_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o open_o violate_v the_o bond_n of_o it_o which_o be_v only_o a_o act_n of_o caution_n in_o a_o church_n to_o preserve_v herself_o in_o unity_n but_o where_o it_o be_v give_v out_o that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a the_o excommunication_n must_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o unreasonable_a because_o it_o be_v against_o those_o internal_a act_n of_o the_o mind_n over_o which_o the_o church_n as_o such_o have_v no_o direct_a power_n and_o p._n 55._o he_o quote_v these_o word_n out_o of_o bp._n bramhall_n 192._o bramhall_n schism_n guard_v p._n 192._o to_o the_o same_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o reject_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o his_o pleasure_n yet_o neither_o do_v we_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o essential_o of_o save_a faith_n or_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o in_o a_o mean_a as_o pious_a opinion_n fit_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n neither_o do_v we_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o only_o not_o to_o contradict_v they_o by_o which_o we_o see_v what_o vast_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v require_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o those_o which_o be_v impose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n last_o thus_o mr._n chillingworth_n 200._o chillingworth_n p._n 200._o of_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o council_n and_o synod_n beyond_o which_o the_o protestant_a synod_n or_o convocation_n pretend_v not_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o after_o time_n i._n e._n after_o the_o apostle_n might_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o declare_v their_o judgement_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o general_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o to_o oblige_v other_o to_o receive_v their_o declaration_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n what_o warrant_v they_o have_v i_o know_v not_o he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n be_v to_o have_v this_o authority_n or_o that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o age_n and_o then_o expire_v he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o of_o these_o thing_n let_v he_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v yet_o i_o willing_o confess_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n though_o not_o infallible_a be_v yet_o so_o far_o directive_n and_o oblige_v that_o without_o apparent_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v be_v sin_n to_o reject_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o afford_v it_o a_o outward_a submission_n for_o public_a peace_n sake_n thus_o much_o as_o the_o protestant_a synod_n seem_v content_v with_o so_o i_o allow_v again_o p._n 375._o he_o say_v any_o thing_n beside_o scripture_n and_o the_o plain_a irrefragable_a indubitable_a consequence_n of_o it_o well_o may_v protestant_n hold_v it_o as_o matter_n of_o opinion_n but_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n neither_o can_v they_o with_o coherence_n to_o their_o own_o ground_n believe_v it_o themselves_o nor_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o it_o of_o other_o without_o most_o high_a and_o most_o schismatical_a presumption_n thus_o he_o now_o i_o suppose_v that_o either_o no_o ptotestant_a church_n or_o synod_n will_v style_v the_o son_n be_v coequal_a godhead_n with_o the_o father_n a_o plain_a irrefragable_a indubitable_a scripture_n or_o consequence_n thereof_o about_o which_o be_v and_o have_v be_v so_o much_o contest_v or_o with_o as_o much_o reason_n they_o may_v call_v whatever_o point_n they_o please_v such_o however_o controvert_v and_o then_o what_o be_v say_v here_o signify_v nothing_o §_o 36_o prot._n be_v not_o mistake_v i_o pray_v especial_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o though_o she_o for_o several_a point_n impose_v former_o by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v grant_v liberty_n of_o opinion_n or_o at_o least_o free_v her_o subject_n from_o obligation_n to_o believe_v so_o in_o they_o as_o the_o church_n former_o require_v yet_o as_o to_o exclusion_n of_o your_o doctrine_n she_o profess_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o 3._o creed_n and_o concern_v the_o addition_n make_v in_o the_o two_o latter_a creed_n to_o the_o first_o dr._n hammond_n 90._o hammond_n of_o fundamental_o p._n 90._o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v thus_o settle_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v and_o still_o be_v in_o all_o reason_n without_o dispute_v to_o be_v receive_v and_o embrace_v by_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o every_o meek_a member_n thereof_o with_o that_o reverence_n that_o be_v due_a to_o apostolic_a truth_n with_o that_o thankfulness_n which_o be_v our_o meet_a tribute_n to_o those_o sacred_a champion_n for_o their_o seasonable_a and_o provident_a propugn_v our_o faith_n with_o such_o timely_a and_o necessary_a application_n to_o practice_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v to_o we_o now_o under_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n christ_n mediate_a successor_n in_o the_o prophetic_a pastoral_n episcopal_n office_n as_o he_o have_v former_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n send_v immediate_o by_o he_o may_v find_v a_o cheerful_a audience_n and_o receive_v all_o uniform_a submission_n from_o we_o thus_o dr._n hammond_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n assent_n to_o the_o 3._o creed_n she_o assent_v also_o to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o 4_o first_o general_n council_n and_o the_o act_n 1._o eliz._n 1._o eliz._n cap._n 1._o declare_v heresy_n that_o which_o have_v be_v adjudge_v so_o by_o they_o now_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o these_o first_o 4._o general_n councll_v your_o tenant_n have_v receive_v a_o mortal_a wound_n †_o but_o last_o the_o four_o canon_n in_o the_o english_a synod_n hold_v 1640._o 4._o 1640._o can._n 4._o particular_o style_n socinianism_n a_o most_o damnable_a and_o curse_a heresy_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o order_n that_o any_o convict_v of_o it_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o absolve_v but_o upon_o his_o repentance_n and_o abjuration_n now_o further_o than_o this_o namely_o excommunication_n upon_o conviction_n no_o other_o church_n i_o suppose_v have_v or_o can_v proceed_v against_o your_o heresy_n it_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o common_a axiom_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la judicat_fw-la de_fw-fr occultis_fw-la and_o cogitationis_fw-la poenam_fw-la nemo_fw-la patitur_fw-la and_o ob_fw-la peccatum_fw-la mere_a internum_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la censura_fw-la ferri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o in_o all_o church_n every_o one_o of_o what_o internal_a persuasion_n soever_o continue_v external_o at_o least_o a_o member_n thereof_o till_o the_o church_n censure_n do_v exclude_v he_o §_o 37_o soc._n the_o church_n of_o england_n allow_v assent_v to_o and_o teach_v what_o she_o judge_v evident_a in_o the_o scripture_n for_o so_o she_o ought_v what_o she_o believe_v or_o assent_v to_o i_o look_v not_o after_o but_o what_o she_o enjoin_v now_o i_o yield_v all_o that_o obedience_n in_o this_o point_n that_o she_o require_v from_o i_o and_o so_o i_o presume_v she_o will_v acknowledge_v i_o a_o dutiful_a son_n prot._n what_o obedience_n when_o as_o you_o deny_v one_o of_o her_o chief_a and_o most_o fundamental_a doctrine_n soc._n if_o i_o mistake_v not_o her_o principle_n she_o require_v of_o i_o no_o internal_a belief_n or_o assent_n to_o any_o of_o her_o doctrine_n but_o only_o 1_o silence_n or_o noncontradiction_n 4._o noncontradiction_n see_v disc_n 3_o §_o 84._o n._n 2._o &_o n._n 4._o or_o 2_o a_o conditional_a belief_n i._n e._n whenever_o i_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o now_o in_o both_o these_o i_o most_o ready_o obey_v she_o for_o the_o one_a i_o have_v strict_o observe_v it_o keep_v my_o opinion_n to_o myself_o unless_o this_o my_o discourse_n with_o you_o have_v be_v a_o breach_n of_o it_o but_o then_o i_o be_v at_o least_o a_o dutiful_a subject_n of_o this_o church_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o discourse_n and_o for_o the_o 2d_o whether_o actual_a conviction_n or_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v make_v the_o condition_n of_o my_o assent_n or_o submission_n of_o
for_o his_o be_v absolve_v from_o mortal_a sin_n but_o also_o to_o seek_v a_o release_n from_o excommunication_n incur_v for_o his_o reinjoy_v the_o church_n communion_n thus_o you_o see_v a_o rigour_n in_o this_o church_n towards_o what_o it_o once_o account_v heresy_n much_o different_a from_o the_o more_o mild_a spirit_n and_o moderate_a temper_n of_o the_o reform_a §_o 41_o to_o conclude_v for_o the_o enjoy_n the_o protestant_a communion_n i_o conceive_v that_o as_o to_o any_o necessary_a approbation_n of_o her_o doctrine_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o hold_v with_o mr._n chillingworth_n as_o i_o do_v 39_o do_v chillingw_n preface_n §_o 39_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n though_o not_o that_o of_o all_o of_o they_o absolute_o true_a yet_o be_v free_a from_o all_o impiety_n and_o from_o all_o error_n destructive_a to_o salvation_n or_o in_o itself_o damnable_a and_o 28._o and_o ib_v §_o 28._o whatsoever_o have_v be_v hold_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o protestant_n or_o even_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o indeed_o have_v give_v no_o certain_a catalogue_n at_o all_o of_o such_o necessary_n that_o against_o the_o socinian_o and_o all_o other_o whatsoever_o i_o do_v very_o believe_v and_o embrace_v and_o which_o be_v still_o the_o same_o 39_o same_o ib._n §_o 39_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v so_o pure_a and_o orthodox_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v it_o and_o live_v according_a to_o it_o undoubted_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v for_o if_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v hold_v in_o it_o then_o so_o be_v no_o error_n opposite_a or_o destructive_a to_o salvation_n hold_v by_o it_o and_o so_o live_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n it_o hold_v i_o may_v be_v save_v again_n ib._n again_n ib._n i_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o error_n in_o it_o which_o may_v necessitate_v or_o warrant_v any_o man_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n or_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o it_o for_o though_o i_o believe_v antisocinianism_n a_o error_n yet_o if_o i_o hold_v it_o not_o such_o as_o that_o for_o it_o any_o man_n may_v disturb_v the_o peace_n or_o aught_o to_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n i_o may_v profess_v all_o this_o and_o yet_o hold_v socinianism_n last_o as_o he_o 376_o he_o chill_n p._n 376_o so_o i_o propose_v i_o any_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o bible_n seem_v it_o never_o so_o incomprehensible_a i_o will_v subscribe_v it_o with_o hand_n and_o heart_n in_o other_o thing_n that_o i_o think_v not_o contain_v in_o this_o book_n i_o will_v take_v no_o man_n liberty_n of_o jud_v gment_n from_o he_o neither_o shall_v any_o man_n take_v i_o from_o i_o for_o i_o be_o full_o assure_v that_o god_n do_v not_o and_o therefore_o that_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o require_v any_o more_o of_o any_o man_n than_o this_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n to_o endeavour_n to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o and_o to_o live_v according_a to_o it_o without_o pertinacy_n i_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n and_o 57_o and_o ib._n §._o 57_o endeavour_v to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n i_o can_v but_z hold_v my_o error_n without_o pertinacy_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o forsake_v it_o when_o a_o more_o true_a and_o a_o more_o probable_a sense_n shall_v appear_v unto_o i_o and_o then_o all_o necessary_a truth_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n i_o be_o certain_a by_o believe_v scripture_n to_o believe_v all_o necessary_a truth_n and_o in_o do_v so_o my_o life_n be_v answerable_a to_o my_o faith_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a i_o shall_v fail_v of_o salvation_n thus_o mr._n chillingworth_n speak_v perfect_o my_o sense_n prot._n i_o see_v no_o other_o cure_n for_o you_o but_o that_o you_o learn_v humility_n and_o mortification_n of_o your_o understanding_n in_o which_o lie_v the_o most_o subtle_a and_o perilous_a of_o all_o pride_n and_o it_o will_v reduce_v you_o to_o obedience_n and_o this_o to_o truth_n that_o with_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n you_o may_v give_v glory_n to_o god_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n coessential_a with_o god_n the_o father_n to_o which_o trinity_n in_o unity_n as_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o be_v now_o so_o shall_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n be_v give_v throughout_o all_o future_a age_n amen_n finis_fw-la addenda_fw-la page_n 30._o line_n 31._o after_o turkey_n add._n brerewood_n brerw_n enquir_n p._n 84._o &_o 88_o compute_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_n in_o asia_n include_v also_o those_o unite_a with_o rome_n not_o to_o amount_v to_o a_o twenty_o part_n of_o its_o inhabitant_n and_o all_o the_o turk_n dominion_n in_o europe_n not_o to_o exceed_v the_o magnitude_n of_o spain_n ib._n p._n 67._o throughout_o who_o dominion_n also_o the_o chief_a etc._n etc._n page_n 30._o line_n penult_n after_o field_n p._n 63._o add._n and_o brerewood_n inquire_v c._n 19_o p._n 147._o page_n 31_o line_n 17_o after_o reside_v add._n to_o which_o in_o the_o last_o place_n may_v be_v add_v that_o great_a body_n of_o the_o same_o communion_n that_o have_v long_o flourish_v and_o daily_o enlarge_v itself_o throughout_o the_o west-indies_n page_n 51_o line_n 4._o after_o practice_n add._n to_o all_o these_o may_v be_v further_o add_v the_o early_a condemnation_n that_o be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n of_o those_o modern_a tenant_n of_o several_a protestant_n in_o opposition_n to_o a_o subordination_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n to_o the_o utility_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o invocation_n of_o the_o saint_n veneration_n of_o saint_n relic_n set_v fasting-day_n festival_n vigil_n abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n monastic_a vow_n especial_o that_o of_o virginity_n and_o celibacy_n hermitage_n disparity_n of_o the_o celestial_a reward_n and_o degree_n of_o glory_n the_o maintainer_n of_o which_o long_o ago_o arrius_n vid._n epiphan_n haer._n 75._o august_n haer._n 53._o jovinian_a vid._n hieron_n contra_fw-la jovin_n austin_n haer._n 82._o vigilantius_n vid._n hieronym_n contra_fw-la vigilant_a be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n i._n e._n as_o opposer_n of_o those_o point_n that_o the_o general_a church_n practise_v receive_v and_o allow_v as_o lawful_a by_o the_o father_n of_o those_o time_n and_o be_v crush_v by_o their_o censure_n be_v prevent_v from_o receive_v any_o further_a sentence_n from_o a_o council_n last_o why_o be_v there_o make_v a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n at_o least_o for_o many_o of_o these_o point_n etc._n etc._n page_n 66_o line_n 19_o after_o himself_o add._n and_o so_o this_o person_n suppose_v by_o protestant_n to_o have_v be_v raise_v up_o by_o god_n to_o vindicate_v his_o truth_n yet_o be_v permit_v by_o he_o to_o die_v in_o their_o conceit_n a_o desertor_n of_o it_o i._n e._n reconcile_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 93_o line_n ult_n after_o exordium_n unitatis_fw-la add._n the_o ecclesiasticalunity_n in_o which_o bishop_n grotius_n conceive_v so_o necessary_a as_o that_o he_o say_v rivet_n apol._n discussio_fw-la p._n 255._o non_fw-la posse_fw-la protestant_n inter_v se_fw-la jungi_fw-la nisi_fw-la simul_fw-la jung_fw-la antur_fw-la cum_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la sedi_fw-la romanae_fw-la coherent_a sine_fw-la qua_fw-la say_v he_o nullum_fw-la sperari_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la common_a regimen_fw-la again_o inter_fw-la causas_fw-la divulsionis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la non_fw-it esse_fw-la primatum_fw-la episcopi_fw-la romani_fw-la secundùm_fw-la canon_n favente_fw-la melancthone_n qui_fw-la eum_fw-la primatum_fw-la etiam_fw-la necessarium_fw-la putat_fw-la ad_fw-la retinendam_fw-la unitatem_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la subjicere_fw-la pontificis_fw-la libidini_fw-la sed_fw-la reponere_fw-la ordinem_fw-la sapienter_fw-la institutum_fw-la thus_o moderate_a protestant_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n found_v supreme_o as_o to_o single_a person_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n page_n 96_o line_n 15._o after_o coeteris_fw-la add._n and_o according_o in_o all_o those_o instance_n gather_v out_o of_o antiquity_n by_o archbishop_n lawd_n §_o 24._o n._n 5._o where_o inferior_a synod_n have_v reform_v abuse_n in_o manner_n or_o make_v decree_n in_o cause_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v willing_o grant_v many_o have_v do_v it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o of_o they_o have_v do_v either_o of_o these_o in_o matter_n state_v before_o contrary_o by_o a_o superior_a authority_n a_o thing_n with_o which_o protestant_n be_v charge_v something_o be_v then_o state_v or_o reform_v by_o inferior_n without_o nothing_o against_o their_o superior_n page_n 103_o line_n 36._o after_o time_n add._n baron_n say_v a._n d._n 358._o that_o in_o tantâ_fw-la errorum_fw-la offusâ_fw-la caligine_fw-la qui_fw-la substantiae_fw-la filii_fw-la dei_fw-la assertores_fw-la essent_fw-la a_o nostris_fw-la in_o pretio_fw-la habebantur_fw-la ut_fw-la pote_fw-la quod_fw-la ut_fw-la soepius_fw-la est_fw-la dictum_fw-la nullâ_fw-la aliâ_fw-la re_fw-la viderentur_fw-la a_o catholicis_fw-la differre_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la vocem_fw-la consubstantialitatis_fw-la non_fw-la admitterent_fw-la page_n 104_o line_n 8_o after_z mention_v add._n so_o but_o that_o the_o word_n be_v well_o capable_a of_o a_o orthodox_n sense_n so_o that_o the_o seventeen_o and_o twenty_o six_o article_n in_o the_o first_o sirmian_n confession_n as_o they_o be_v understand_v by_o sozomen_n in_o the_o semi-arrian_a l._n 5._o c._n so_o be_v they_o compare_v with_o the_o antecedent_n expound_v by_o st._n hillary_n de_fw-fr synodis_fw-la in_o a_o catholic_n sense_n the_o semi-arrian_a bishop_n it_o seem_v etc._n etc._n page_n 125_o line_n ult_n after_o errores_fw-la add._n and_o ib._n q._n 5._o a._n 3._o omnibus_fw-la articulis_fw-la fidei_fw-la inhaeret_fw-la fidei_fw-la propter_fw-la unum_fw-la medium_n sci_fw-la propter_fw-la veritatem_fw-la primam_fw-la propositam_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la in_o scripture_n secundùm_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sane_fw-la intelligendis_fw-la see_v several_a authority_n to_o this_o purpose_n collect_v by_o fr._n a_o s._n clara_n in_o system_n fid._n c._n 7._o page_n 206_o line_n 3._o after_o accesserunt_fw-la add._n concern_v 1_o the_o corruption_n of_o humane_a nature_n and_o bondage_n under_o sin_n 2_o justification_n gratuital_n and_o 3_o christ_n sacerdotal_a office_n thus_o he_o censure_v ancient_a church-tradition_n resp_n ad_fw-la cassand_n offic_n pii_fw-la viri_fw-la in_o cassand_n oper_n p._n 802._o verum_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o controversiam_fw-la vocetur_fw-la quia_fw-la flexibile_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a scripture_n inter_fw-la nasi_fw-la cerei_fw-la si_fw-la absque_fw-la traditionis_fw-la subsidio_fw-la quicquam_fw-la definire_fw-la fas_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la quid_fw-la jam_fw-la fiet_fw-la praeciput_v fidei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la capitibus_fw-la tria_fw-la solum_fw-la exempli_fw-la causa_fw-la proferam_fw-la 1._o naturae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la corruptio_fw-la &_o miserable_fw-la animae_fw-la servitus_fw-la sub_fw-la peccati_fw-la tyrannide_fw-la 2._o gratuita_fw-la justificatio_fw-la 3._o et_fw-la christi_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la apud_fw-la vetustissimos_fw-la scriptores_fw-la ita_fw-la obscurè_fw-la attingitur_fw-la ut_fw-la nulla_fw-la inde_fw-la certitudo_fw-la possit_fw-la elici_fw-la si_fw-la ex_fw-la eorum_fw-la traditione_n haurienda_fw-la sit_fw-la cognitio_fw-la salutis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la jacebit_fw-la omuis_fw-la fiducia_n quia_fw-la ex_fw-la illis_fw-la nunquam_fw-la discemus_fw-la quomodo_fw-la deo_fw-la reconciliemur_fw-la quomodo_fw-la illuminemur_fw-la a_o spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o formemur_fw-la in_o obsequium_fw-la justitiae_fw-la quomodo_fw-la gratis_o accepta_fw-la nobis_fw-la feratur_fw-la christi_fw-la obedientia_fw-la quid_fw-la valeat_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la mortis_fw-la ejus_fw-la &_o continua_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la intercessio_fw-la quarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la luculenta_fw-la explicatio_fw-la in_o scripturâ_fw-la passim_fw-la occurrit_fw-la itaque_fw-la novo_fw-la hoc_fw-la magistro_fw-la cassandr_n authore_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la apprimè_fw-la cognitu_fw-la necessaria_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la tantùm_fw-la manebunt_fw-la semisepulta_a sed_fw-la quia_fw-la nulla_fw-la traditio_fw-la suffragatur_fw-la i._n e._n in_o antiquity_n certitudine_fw-la carebunt_fw-la thus_o he_o and_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o of_o such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o many_o protestant_n deliver_v in_o these_o matter_n no_o footstep_n will_v be_v find_v in_o antiquity_n and_o that_o nulla_fw-la traditio_fw-la suffragabitur_fw-la page_n 230_o line_n 35._o after_o censetur_fw-la add._n and_o ib._n q._n 5._o be_v 3._o si_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la pertinaciter_fw-la discredit_n articulum_fw-la fidei_fw-la paratus_fw-la sequi_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la haereticus_fw-la sed_fw-la solùm_fw-la errans_fw-la page_n 342_o line_n 28._o after_o prot._n add._n no_o person_n that_o be_v appoint_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n in_o any_o controversy_n as_o those_o bishop_n you_o have_v mention_v be_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o arrius_n can_v right_o or_o proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v on_o that_o side_n for_o which_o he_o give_v sentence_n a_o party_n nor_o do_v their_o give_a sentence_n once_o against_o any_o side_n prejudice_v they_o as_o enemy_n or_o opposite_n or_o interest_v from_o sit_v on_o the_o bench_n as_o oft_o as_o need_n require_v to_o pass_v it_o again_o alone_o or_o with_o other_o but_o if_o every_o one_o may_v be_v afterward_o call_v a_o anti-party_n who_o once_o declare_v himself_o of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n i_o perceive_v etc._n etc._n finis_fw-la